Cults Myths and Religions

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 236

i

ERKELEY

^
\

ll-RARY
rai/ERSlTY

Of j

CALIFORNIA

EDWARD SAKER, JOHV lilUClIT


if.

'II

STUI

'..\f:!IA.\>.

INCI AM.

\J

CULTS,

MYTHS AND RELIGIONS

CULTS,

MYTHS

AND RELIGIONS

SALOMON REINACH

TRANSLATED BY

ELIZABETH FROST

LONDON
17

DAVID NUTT GRAPE STREET, NEW OXFORD STREET


1912

LOAN STACK

3Uo

INTRODUCTION
In the eyes of the evolutionist
ists

and we are
beast,

all

evolution-

nowadays

man

springs from

humanity from

animality.
will, is

But man, take him where and when you


;

a religious animal
is

and

religiosity, as the Positivist

would say,

the most essential of his attributes.

It

can no longer be maintained, with Gabriel de Mortillet

and Hovelacque, that quaternary man was ignorant of Unless, then, we admit the gratuitous and religion. childlike hypothesis of a primitive revelation, we must
look for the origin of religions in the psychology, not
of civilised
civilisation.

man, but

of

man

the farthest removed from

Of
direct

man, anterior to all history, we have no knowledge, beyond what we glean from the implethis
artistic

ments and

products of the quaternary period.


I

True, these teach us something, as

have striven to

show on a
us far
less

later

page

but, equally truly, they teach

than we could wish.


three

To supplement our
be tapped
:

information,

other sources have to

the psychology of the present-day savage, the psychology


of children,
It is

and the psychology


animists
stirring

of the higher animals.

probable that animals, certain that savages and


are

children,

that

they

project
into

the

twilit

intelligence,

within them, V

the

external

502

vi

INTRODUCTION

and people the universe, especially the beings and objects that surround them, with a life and sentiment
world,

akin to their own.

Poetry,
is

with her personifications

and her metaphors,


this state of

only a self-conscious survival of

mind, which we might even say has found


scientific

an eleventh-hour justification in the

monism

which

discerns

everywhere the manifestations of one

identical principle of energy.

The higher animals not only obey that residuum of they have ancestral experience known as instinct scruples. Hawks do curbed by energies their physical and not pike out hawks' een,' says the homely adage
;
'

any exceptions that may


rule serve only to confirm

be alleged against the general


it.

This scruple, in regard to


flesh of the species,

shedding the blood or devouring the

may

not be primitive

but in the case of every species,

whose young need to be suckled or protected, it is a vital condition of its preservation. Where no such scruple
existed, the species has quickly

and inevitably disappeared


against
suicide.

natural
primitive
^/

selection

is

powerless

With
blood

or

savage humanity,
less

the

scruple
certain

of

would seem

general than

among

animals.

Homo homini
it is

lupus, said Hobbes.

On

the other hand

singularly intense in certain groups united


;

of consanguinity

that

is

to say, in clans

by ties whose members


filiation

believe themselves to be descended

from a common mother

descent from the female being the only form of


which can be absolutely established.

Thus the scruple this


tive appetites

barrier opposed to the destruc-

is

an heritage transmitted to

man from
are as

animals.

Scruples,

or at least certain scruples,

natural to
scruples

him as the religious sentiment itself. In fact, and animism combined are the starting-point of


INTRODUCTION
religion.

vii

For
lie

if

animism

is

the mother of mythology,

scruples

at the root of religious laws

and

piety.

Here a third element, peculiar to the homo sapiens,

comes
state,

in.

Many

of the higher animals live in a gregarious


;

implying the scruple of the blood of the species

but they do not form communities.


not only a social animal
phrase,
:

Man, however,

is

he

is also,

in the Aristotelian

a political
fall

animal
into the
single

i^dov

ttoXitikov.
;

Possibly,

bees and ants

same category

but among
is

mammals, with the


nothing similar.

exception of man, there

This social instinct, a development of

the gregarious instinct, impels

man

to seek the

company,

the friendship, and the protection of his kind.

But he

goes further, and, under the influence of the animistic


illusion, enlarges indefinitely

the circle of his relations,


finds certain animals

actual or imaginary.

The savage

and certain plants about him, and the very mystery


their existence leads

of

him to give them place in the group formed by the members of the clan. Soon he infers that animal and plant must spring from a common origin with
himself,

and he proceeds

to apply the

same scruple

to

them
1900

as to his
life is

own

people.

This respect for plant and

animal
I

the
it

germ

of dendrolatry

and zoolatry.

In

called

an hypertrophy of the social

instinct,

and

do not believe that anyone has since proposed a


irrational scruple, leading

more acceptable explanation.

The
in
all

up
at

to a blank, unreasonis

ing interdiction, the sanction of which

death,
periods.

is

found These

human communities and


in

all

interdictions, in their

most primitive and


Sociologists

explicit form,

have been carefully studied


bear the
in this

Polynesia,

where they no

name

of Taboo.

have acquiesced
I

barbarous but convenient term, and

see

viii

INTRODUCTION
it.

reason for discarding


diction itself
;

Taboo

is

not only the inter-

it is

also the being or the object protected

by that interdiction. Thus blood is versely we speak of the taboo of blood.


objects, or fetichism,
civilisations,

taboo,

and con-

Zoolatry and dendrolatry, like the worship of inanimate

were familiar enough to the

classical
It

but only as survivals pure and simple.

was among the North American peoples


century that they were
first

of the eighteenth

observed in general and

active operation, entailing the


for

most serious consequences


itself.

the constitution of the family

Hence^via
which the

the missionaries

has

come the name

totern,

red

man

applied to the animal, the plant, or (more rarely)

the mineral or celestial body, which his clan recognised


as an ancestor, a protector,

and a

rallying symbol.

The

primitive form of zoolatry and dendrolatry, antedating

any kind
that

of

anthropomorphism,

is

totemism.

It

may
tribal

not be so widespread as animism, but the fact remains


it

exists,

or has existed,

among numerous

groups, both living and dead, in Europe, Asia, Africa,

America, and Oceania.^

A
the

study of the psychology of children tends to confirm


observations
of

historians

and

ethnologists,
of

by
this

enabling

them

to

watch the actual workings

hypertrophy

this
I

morbid exaggeration

of

the

social

instinctwhich
It is

imagine to be the origin of totemism.

only necessary to take a child to the Zoo to be

convinced of the extraordinary attraction, quite distinct

from mere
^

curiosity,

which the animals exercise upon


a writer
in

It

is

useless to say, with

the Revue des traditions

populaires (1904, p. 323), that to discuss the subject is tantamount to ploughing the sands, as there is not one totemism but many totemisms.

The remark

is

equally true of magic, religion, and morality

yet

it is

both our right and our duty to disengage their essential principles.

INTRODUCTION
him, and the sympathy or respect

ix

the

poles

removed
If

from fear

with

which certain types inspire him.


of sentiment is

this tangled

complex

totemism

in

embryo,

then twentieth-century

man is

a totemist from his mother's

womb

The animal
is it

fable

is

the oldest form of popular litera-

ture, and, to this day, the best

beloved by children.

For

not an echo of tales conceived by the imagination of


his credulity, in those
?

man, and accepted by

dim ages
links

when the
and the
fact,

beasts of the field spoke with tongues

Between the taboo and the totem are many


transition
is

easy from one to the other.

In

the primitive taboo, the


is

germ

of every social

compact,

protects the totem, which

the animal or plant tabooed.

The totem
logical

is

inconceivable without a taboo, and the


of a generalised

outcome
else
if

taboo can hardly be

anything

than a totem.

Again,

we knew nothing

of the Polynesian taboo,

nothing of the American totem,

and nothing

of

the

analogous phenomena noticeable in so

many

quarters of

the globe, the mere existence of domestic animals and


cultivated plants,

among

the half-civilised peoples of the


us, after eliminating

Old World and the New, would compel


all

other hypotheses, to assume the presence of

some

powerful agency, akin to the taboo and the totem, as


alone capable of explaining the domestication of these

animals and plants.

It is

obvious enough that, before


to increase

they were reared by

man and made

under his

protection and for his use, they

must have been spared by


of cattle

man.

But with primitive humanity, ignorant


cereals,

and

destitute of food-reserves,

and perpetually

face to face with starvation,


influence strong

there could be only one

enough

to save

an edible plant or animal

X
from destruction.
to
entail,

INTRODUCTION
That influence was a
of
religious scruple

a taboo, the violation


death.
is

which entailed, or was supposed

But the taboo which preserves an


the essential principle of totemism
;

animal or plant

and the animal or plant, which a clan respects and keeps in its immediate neighbourhood as a protector and friend,
is

the totem.

Thus we can

establish a priori the existence

of taboos

and totems

in countries

where domestic animals

and

cereals

have been known from early times.


it

Now, on
to the

the other hand,


traveller

is

perfectly certain

thanks

and

his

note-book

that

the taboo and totem

flourish almost exclusively in regions

where the domestic

animal and cultivated plant are conspicuous


absence.

by

their
:

The conclusion was drawn by Mr. Jevons


left

if

totemism has
rites of

no perceptible trace
its

in the ideas
is

and

a given locality,

surest

monument

that very

civilisation
It is to

which has so profoundly modified them both.


the honour of Robertson Smith that he was
clear relief the religious consequences

the
of

first

to

throw into

totemism

consequences
modern

which

still

persist
rule, the

in

the

heart of our

civilisation.

As a

animal

or vegetable totem, conceived as a well-spring of holiness

and power, was allowed to


of sanctification.

live in

peace but in exceptional


;

cases the clansmen solemnly slew

and ate

it

as a

means

As these

religious

banquets became
;

more

frequent, they degenerated into ordinary debauches

then, with the progress of rationalism,

the sacrosanct
its

character of animal or plant was forgotten in


evident utility.

self-

But

the tradition of holy feasts, cele-

brated in special circumstances, did not disappear, and


there always lingered the simple and seductive idea of a
gastric assimilation
of the divine essence.
.

Theophagy
;

and Communion are

relics of this

savage creed

and with

INTRODUCTION
tive

xi

every fresh insight into the genuinely popular and primielements of ancient religions,
it

grows more and

more obvious how many votaries that creed must have had even in the Old World. Man is never seriously attracted by fire-new ideas, but by modifications of those
old ideas which are insensibly fructifying within him.
4c
4:

*
will

4:

In this and the following volumes


applications

be found

many

and confirmations
anticipated
I

of the foregoing principles,

some new, some already seen


and
others
scholars.

as through a glass darkly,

and

developed
to

by

different
I

Had

been the
first

first

formulate them,

should rank with the

thinkers of

my

day,

and

modesty alone would preclude me from saying so on the


house-tops.

As a matter
Smith,

of fact, I

do not exactly know


'

who made
Lennan,
themselves not myself.
ideas of

the discoveries.

Lang,
;

The names of Tylor, MacFrazer, and Jevons suggest


is

^^^
<a^
c^

I'tont^Cj

but the one thing certain

that

it

was
,

Jam V,
;

Mine has been a


betters,

lowlier part,

to grasp the
I

my

and

to diffuse

them

as widely as

might,
in the

first in

my

lectures at the Ecole

du Louvre, then
in
I

Academic des

Inscriptions,

and again

many
began

popular and

scientific reviews.
fields,

In France,

when

my
ask

excursions into these

the whole subject was so

absolutely a sealed book that M. Charles Richet had to

word totemism, before I dealt with phenomena in the Revue Scientifique} At the Academic des Inscriptions, in igoo, the only members who did not doubt my sanity, when I read some lucubrato explain the

me

that group of

tions

on the

biblical taboos

and the totemism


time,

of the Celts,

were

MM. Maspero and Hamy.


I

whom
'

saw about the same


article in question

The German scholars Mommsen among the


vi. of

The

forms chapter

the present volume.

xii rest,

INTRODUCTION
had never heard
Bible,
of a totem.

The taboos and totems

of

the

a question underlying those alimentary

interdictions

which ignorance regards as hygienic precepts,


lists.

brought the Jewish theologians into the

One

of

them

dealt

faithfully

with

epithet already hurled at

me as me by my

an anti-semite, an
distinguished friend
to

Victor Berard, because

had ventured

impugn,

in the

pages of the Mirage Oriental, the antiquity and omnipresence of Phoenician commerce.

To-day the voice

of

ignorance

is

a Httle less heard in the land.

Thanks

to

the diffusion of the English works which have inspired

me, thanks to the labours of the lamented Marillier and


the editors of the Annee Sociologique,

thanks perhaps, those

in

some

degree, to

my own missionary efforts which,


I

with the

ardour of the neophyte,

have carried into the very

precincts of the Popular Universities,

who once
is
'

kicked most obstinately against the pricks


ledge
'

now acknowbe said for

that

the

system of anthropological exegesis


'

the fashion,' and that

something

may

totems and taboos.

In England, where the relations of

the mother-country with her remote colonies have long


familiarised the public with these ideas, there

school which complains that the totem has

now a been as much


is

abused as the solar myth.^


reaction
is

characteristic

sign

of

that

certain

latter-day

writers

on Greek

mythology
thus,

religiously

eschew

the word totem,

which
me

by a
is

curious turn of the wheel, becomes taboo.


is

This reaction

every whit as unscientific as the abuse


it

which

supposed to have given

birth.

It

seems to

that the ground won, and well won, should neither be

Man, 1901, p. 12. But the same scholar justly remarks Without totemism one can hardly see how eaily 1902, p. 86) human society was ever organised at all.'
'

A. Lang,

{ibid.

'

INTRODUCTION
doned.
to
fit

xiii

extended by rash usurpation, nor faint-heartedly aban-

The system
every
lock.

of taboos

and totems
there are

is

not a key
religious

In the complex whole of


cults,

phenomena, myths, and

many

things

which ought to be explained otherwise.

In mythology,

particularly, I believe that the earlier methods, especially

that of iconological exegesis, can justify their existence

by

irrefragable arguments,

some few

of

which are due to


ritual involves

myself.

But wherever the myth or


masquerade
duty

sacred animal or plant, a god or hero torn in pieces or


sacrificed, a

of true believers, or

an alimentary
is

prohibition, the

of a scholarly interpreter

to read

the riddle in terms of the taboo and totem.


otherwise, after the results already attained,
one's back
is

To do
to turn

upon the obvious I might almost


of exegesis,

say,

upon

scientific honesty.

The former systems

from Euhemerus and


have
this feature in

the Stoics to Creuzer and

Max

Miiller,

common

they consider myths and religions as the

product of a special faculty of man, set in motion by an


impression from without, an historical recollection, or an
abstract idea

or, it

may

be, led astray

will-o'-the-wisp.
lies

The great

superiority

by some verbal of the new system


which

in the fact that it emphasises the stringent ties

connect the evolution of cults and myths with the


total of

sum

human
it is

faculties

and the progress

of civilisation of

both moral and material.


in so far as
is

The primitive
off,

life

humanity,
Religion
art,

not purely animal,

is religious.

the parent stem which has thrown

one by one,

agriculture, law,

moraUty, poHtics, and even rationalism,


later

must eliminate all religions. For the original function of rationalism was to devise a ritual capable of breaking the fetters in which man had bound
which sooner or

xiv
himself,

INTRODUCTION
and
to

enlarge the liberties of

relaxing the rigours of the taboo.

humanity by The instrument of this

emancipation was the sacerdotal caste, which served the

Nor was By fixing ritual while belief was still this its only merit. fluid, it rendered the antagonism between those two elements of religion more sensible and, in the long run, more intolerable. The careful reader, if this book should find any, will
cause of freedom before
it

turned oppressor.

observe that

it

is

not free from repetition.

Repetition

was

inevitable,

since

each chapter or article forms a


In

sell-contained

whole.

any

case,

that

vice

which

Villemain preached
is

as a virtue to the professors of his

day

a necessity to the writer

who aims
liberal

at familiarising the

man

in the street with the results of a science which, like


is

Philosophy aforetime,

both

and

liberatress.
S.

R.

Paris.

CONTENTS
Introduction
I.

.....

PAGE

V
I

General Phenomena of Animal Totemism

II.

The Theory of Sacrifice The Origin and Essence of Taboos


Tarpeia

26
36 43

III.

IV.
V.

......

The Domestication of Animals The King Sacrificed


The Origin of Prayers for the Dead
Art and Magic

80
93
105

VI.
VII.

VIII.

.....

124
138

IX.

The Apostles among the Anthropophagi

X.

The Babylonian Myths and the First Chapters of


Genesis
^57

....

XI.
XII.
XIII.

The Hebraic Sabbath The Sentiment of Modesty


The Morality of Mithraism

167
172

180
197

XIV.

The Progress of Humanity

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
I

CHAPTER

THE GENERAL PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM

At
the

the outset of this article,


fact

it

may

be advisable to recall

that

the

word totem
native

sign,

mark,

family

emanates from America, precisely as tahoo


thing
interdicted

interdiction,
The two

is

to

Polynesia.

terms, however great their discrepancy of origin, are for

the future scientifically inseparable

for totemism, as will

appear

later, is

simply a particular system of taboos.


as a rule,
is

The totem,
a

an animal

less

frequently
is it

vegetable

only in exceptional

instances

an
it

inorganic

object.

The
:

radical

distinction
is

between

and the

fetish is this
is

the fetish

one individual object

the totem

a class of objects, regarded

by members
in

of

the tribe or clan as tutelar


sense of the word.

protective,
call

the widest

Take the case


will

of a clan with a serpent

totem

the

members

themselves

Serpents,

claim descent from a serpent, abstain from killing serpents,


raise pet serpents, read the future

by the

aid of serpents,

believe themselves

immune from

serpent-bites

and

so

on

indefinitely.
'

Revue

scientifique,

October

13, 1900.

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

This aggregate of superstitions and customs radiating

from the totem constitutes what for the last thirty years has been known as Totemism. From the beginning of
the eighteenth century, French missionaries were struck

with the importance of totems in the reHgious,

social,

and

political life of the

North American native.

One

of

them, the Jesuit Lafitau, actually conceived the idea


a stroke of genius in that age
of totemism,

of appl^dng the phenomena

which he was studying among the Iroquois,

to the interpretation of a special type of Greek m^^tholog}''

the Chimaera.

During the
missionaries

first

two-thirds of the nineteenth century,

and

travellers in

almost every quarter of

the globe kept gleaning facts analogous to those observed


in

eighteenth-century

America.

More

than

this,

it

became apparent that not only had


been noted
in

similar

phenomena

Peru as early as the sixteenth century,

but that unmistakable allusions could be traced in the


classical

writers

themselves
&c.

in

Herodotus,

Diodorus,

Pausanias,
of the

Aelian,

In

1869

MacLennan

author
a

famous work on primitive marriage

proposed

theory implying the survival of totemic custom and belief


in

large
;

number

of

civilisations

both ancient and

modern

but he preached to deaf ears.

Towards 1885

the question was again taken up with riper knowledge

and greater
Frazer.

critical

acumen by Robertson Smith and


it

Since then
of

has never ceased to engage the


especially
in

attention

science,

England,

where
are

Lubbock, Tylor, Herbert Spencer, Andrew Lang, Jevons,


Cook, Grant Allen, and others have occupied, or
occupying, themselves with
it.

still

The fundamental

characteristic of animal

totemism

is

the existence of a religious compact, none too clearly

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


defined,

between certain clans of


1

men and

certain species

of animals.

Although
authenticated,

cases

of

totemic
the

survival

have
be laid

been

during

eighteenth
it

and

nineteenth

centuries, in all parts of the world, ^

may

down

as a broad principle that


exist

totemism has only continued to


remained rough-hewn, more
of animals
in
fact,

where

civilisation has

especially in countries

where the domestication

has
that

made but
if

little

headway.

We may

say,

totemism creates a bond between animal and man,

the natural consequences of that


to the

totemism which created


;

it.

bond are often fatal The statement may


as Mr.

savour of paradox

but

in reality,
is

Jevons well

showed, the causal nexus

perfectly clear

and natural.

>

For example

Suppose a group of totemist clans, given to taming


bears,

serpents,

or

eagles,

because

the}-

credit

them
:

with a divine quality by which they hope to profit

obviously this state of affairs might last indefinitely,


for the simple reason that the

animals in question are

totally unsuited for domestication.

No

doubt,

if

one of

them were

edible,

it

would soon come


;

to be eaten at

periodical gatherings of the clan

the idea being to renew

the covenant between

man and

beast

by a

species of

communion.
1

But, on the other hand, there would be

For the sake of brevity, I have dealt with animal totemism alone. Vegetable totemism, though rarer, lends itself to the same comparative method. See Frazer's Totemism, pp. 91-95 {Geogyaphical Distribution I am aware that the author's ideas were considerably of Totemism). modified in 1899 (v. Annie Sociologique, iii. 217) but the facts which he has so ably classified and to which I must perpetually refer in the course of this work outweigh any theory on the primitive character of totemism.

^Jevons,
following.

Introduction

to

the

History of Religion,

pp.

114 and


AND RELIGIONS
these

4
little

CULTS, MYTHS.
temptation
to

multiply

sacred

banquets
be

unduly, for wild animals could not be had for the asking,

and the supply


limited.

of

tame specimens would

of necessity

Now

take another group of clans, and give them as


bull,

totems the

the boar, and the sheep.

A
As

few half-

tame couples are

certain to reproduce their species in


of the clans.

the immediate neighbourhood

a result,

the periodic sacrifices of the totem, and the banquets


following

those

sacrifices,

will

tend

to

increase

in

frequency, until

in
less

the

long run

their character

be-

comes

less

and

sacramental
the

and more and more


in

gastronomic.

When

animals

question

are

thoroughly domesticated,

formed into herds, guarded

by
of

and constantly in touch with man, the tradition periodic sacrifices and banquets will still be retained
dogs,
;

as a religious form

but in practice the tendency

will

be

to discard the old superstitious reverence

and look on

the animal simply as a flesh-producer.

This stage in the

decadence

of

totemism
of

is

apt to produce a set of pheno-

which we need only turn to oldanimal clan is no longer the The world civilisations. what remains of the primitive sentiment object of a cult mena,
for

examples

is

focused on particular animals, considered as divine,the bull of Apis, the he-goat of

such as

Mendes, the

crocodile of

Lake Moeris, and the

lion of Leontopolis in

Egypt.^

Often enough, the prohibition against killing


of

animals
that
is

one or more species has survived as a taboo

2
;

to say, as

an interdict without a motive,

or, at

most,

Diodorus Siculus,

i.

80.

At the present day, many totemic


principle intact.

tribes are

known who

are not
justified

forbidden to eat their totems.

These exceptions can easily be

and leave the

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM

with motives (hygienic, for instance) which belong to an absokitely different order of thought and are merely

due to the misplaced ingenuity

of

a later age.

The

Mussulman and
point.

Jewish religions of to-day are cases in

But the

principal factor in the decline of totemism


:

is

the creation of the Pantheon

in other words,

mythology.
of personal

The idea

of divine clans

is

replaced

by that

divinities, w^hose family-trees

and

family-histories, fixed

by poets and
atmospheric
occasionall}'

priests, reflect in

turn totemic traditions,


conceptions,

phenomena,
for there
is

spnbolic
all

and

truth in

the systems proposed

purely verbal combinations or confusions.

Religion
that she

migrates from earth to

heaven,

but

for

all

never loses
his

touch of earth.
with
his

After the dissolution of


clans,

league

the

animal
clientele

man

distributes

them among
gods
tism

new

of

gods.

With these
animals
are

whose
and
is

numbers are rapidly reduced by syncre-

selection

certain
:

species

of

rather loosely identified


species

in

some

instances,

the same
several

connected by

ritual

and legend with


different
deity.

gods, because

two or more clans with the same totem


it

have each
the

attributed

to

Thus,

according to
in
lizard,

Turner, one
the
owl,

Samoan god was


;

incarnate

and the milleped

another in

the bat, the pigeon, the domestic fowl, the sea-urchin,

and
form
wolf

so forth.

In classical mythology, Jupiter


of
is

is

represented in the
Conversely, the
;

an

eagle,

a bull, and a swan.

the animal of Apollo and Ares alike


;

the bull
is

represents Zeus as well as Dionysos

and the dolphin

the

emblem both
is

of Apollo

and Posidon.

To multiply

examples

useless.

CULTS, MYTHS,
Before going further,
it

AND RELIGIONS
may
be well to note that,
till

the very end of ancient mythology, these animals


attributes,
of the

the

companions,

mounts,

or

favourite

victims

gods
;

retain

throughout the distinctive mark of

totemism

their sanctity resides, not in the individual,

but in the species.


his

The statement, that man

distributed

totems among his gods, was more than an empty


;

phrase
to
it,

for

totemism, or something very nearly akin


to

was transplanted
the

Olympus.

It

was not one


every

eagle which

was the bird


of

of Zeus,

nor one wolf which

was
every

companion
an

Ares

it

was
the

eagle,

wolf,

animal

species

for

each

individual
sanctity
of

god.

Thus the old


animal
clan,

notion,

as
in

to

of

the

lived

on

the

shadow
to

the

sanctity of God.^
If

mythology, by absorption,
it

tends

cause

the
that,

disappearance of totemism,
to

must not be forgotten

some

extent,

it

owes

its

origin to totemism.

In Greek

mythology, for example, we not only find animal totems


associated with the gods, but also a cloud of legends
relative
to

the

transformation

of

gods into

animals.

These metamorphoses of fable are simply poetical expedients


for
fitting

an older animal legend into the


So,

cycle of a divine legend.

Zeus takes the form of a

swan

in order to seduce Leda,

who

brings an egg into the

world.
of tribes

This fable must have originated

among

a group

with a swan totem.

In view of the sacrosanct

character of the bird and the supposed relationship of


the animal clan with the

human

clan,

they would find

no
'

difficulty in believing that a

swan could couple with

Even to-day the Russian peasant never kills a dove, because it and children are still taught in France the bird of the Holy Ghost not to crush the insects called betes du bon Dieu (lady-birds).
is
;

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


and impregnate a woman.
lover of
^

When totcmism was


;

verging

on extinction, the legend survived

but

if

the swan-

Leda was
to

to remain divine, mythological tradition

was bound
god.
of

represent

him
is

as

the incarnation of a

Thus metamorphosis
but
a
of

not a primary postulate


hypothesis to
taste
of

mythology,

semi-rationalistic

reconcile

the relics

totemism

to

the

nascent anthropomorphism.

The

distribution of the clan totems

among
day

the tribal
:

and national gods was not the work

of a

it

must

have been conditioned by a whole mass of circumstances

is

alliances, wars, local

amalgamations

the clue to which


;

obviously lost forever.

One

factor of the first import-

ance seems to have been the ritual of sacrifice


like all rituals, is

which,

eminently conservative.
its

Take the case

of a clan
it

owning the bull as


the bull

totem, and sacrificing


is

at intervals.
;

In time the era of personal deities


is

ushered in

converted into an attribute of

the chief god, and offered


there lingers a
victim's

up

to

him

in sacrifice

yet the

more or

less distinct recollection of

own

divinity.

From

this

combination of the

old idea with the

new

springs a third, which has been

destined to

pla}''

no

trivial part in the religious history of

mankind
god.

the

idea of the sacrifice of an anthropomorphic


is

This

conception

especially

noticeable

in

the

cult of Zagreus, the

Thracian Dionysus, who, according

to the rite-begotten legend, fled from the Titans under

the form of a
pieces,

young

bull,

only to be caught, torn in


as the

and devoured.

As long

godhead dwelt

in

'

In Egypt the goat was adored at Mendes, and Herodotus relates


'

Mendesian canton had open commerce with a certain woman' (ii. 46). These vagaries of superstition were natural enough, when the myths were swarming with parallels.
that, in his day, a goat of the

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
:

the species and not in the individual, a sacrifice of this

type could be repeated ad infinitum

every bull that

was

slain,

and

limb

by bleeding limb

divided

among

the faithful, was, so to say, a


sacrifice of

new

vessel of election, the

which

still left

a perennial spring of holiness

in the species A

But when the deity was no longer distributed evenly


over the species, but concentrated in a single person,
the idea of sacrificing

him became
find
in

inadmissible, except

on condition
is

of his

subsequent resurrection.

And

this

precisely

what we
after

the legend of Dion^^sus

Zagreus,

who,

being

devoured by the

Titans
life

(the ancestors of

man), was restored to a glorious

by

Jove.
Generally, however, the effect of anthropomorphism

was
gift

to obscure the idea of a sacrifice of the god,

and
not

to accentuate the offering of the victim to the

god as a
is

or

an expiation.
;

This

latter

conception
of

primitive primitive

for

it

implies

the

existence

the

non-

individual

god,
it is

and the anthropomorphic

hypothesis, with which

bound up, marks a


in

tolerably
so

recent phase in the history of religion.

Still,

unof

questioned was

its

vogue

Greece,
that

from the age

Homer and Hesiod downwards,


case of a few mystic survivals

except

in

the

no other form of
'

sacrifice
rites

was dreamed
'

of.

Hence, whenever we meet with

An

absolutely complete example of the

totemic sacrament

'

was observed,

in 1899, by Messrs. B. Spencer and Tribes of Central Australia, p. 204 cf. Hubert, Annee sociologique, vol. iii. pp. 208-215). Among certain tribes of Central Australia,
;

F. Gillen (Native

the totem is solemnly eaten by the members of the totemic group, Not only have at the end of certain ceremonies called Intichiuma.
'

they must eat of it first. Then, and then only, the members of other totemic groups have the right to eat as much as they choose.' they the right to eat of
it
;

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


presupposing
the

death

of

god,

accompanied
easily

by

lamentations for his taking-off, and followed by ecstatic


rejoicings at his resurrection,

the vestiges of totemism.

we are face to The point might

face with

be

shown by an

analysis of the ritual followed at the festival

of the Syrian Adonis, who, the legend says,

was done

to

death by a wild boar (an animal that remained taboo in


Syria),

but who was originally neither more nor


itself

less

than the wild boar

totem

slain

and eaten once


no victims
to

a year at a solemn feast of communion.


In
his

the

totemic
or
their

period,
priests,

man

offers

gods

because

he knows neither

gods nor

priests.

The
its

clan sanctifies itself


of

accurate, renews

store

sanctity

to be by eating an
or,
rites.

animal totem in accordance with certain

This

need was

still

felt

after
It

the phase of strict totemism

had passed

awa}'.

survived under two forms.

Some-

times the totem,

now
of

regarded as an unclean beast,


This w'as the rule in the
referred
:

continued to be eaten ritually.

mystic conventicles

Jerusalem,
(Ixvi. 17)

to

in

the

following passage of Isaiah


themselves,

They

that sanctify

and purify themselves in


consumed

the gardens behind one

tree in the midst, eating swine's flesh,

and

the

abomination

and

the mouse, shall be

together, saith the Lord.

Here the forbidden foods are already playing the part


of those

magic potions

to be

found

in all

popular phar-

macopoeias

the
still

efftcac}^ of

which varies directly with


of a cleansing sancti-

their repulsiveness.
fication
is

But the idea

clearly indicated

by the prophet

and
is

the

custom, against which he inveighs so forcibly,

only a survival from the grey past of religion.


In the second place, where the need for sanctiiication

could no more be satisfied at the expense of an animal

10

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
to the

whose prestige had disappeared owing


of

decadence

totemism,

it

was inevitable that


homini.

man
result

should turn

to

man

homo

res sacra

The

was human
;

sacrifice

accompanied by acts

of cannibalism

in

which
of

Robertson
totemic
authors
;

Smith

rightly

saw an aftermath

the

sacrifice.

References

abound
is

in

the

classical

although the cannibalism

usually limited

to tasting the victim's blood or eating a small part of


his body.

The most important

texts on the subject are

those of Plato and Pausanias on the cult of Zeus L3-caeus


in Arcadia

deity

who

has been mistakenly identified

with

the

Phoenician

Baal.i

This

cult

succeeded

totemic wolf-cult involving a ceremonial sacrifice of the


animal, followed
faithful

by a banquet,

in virtue of

which the
sanctit}^ of

beUeved that they assimilated the

the victim and were themselves translated into divine


wolves.

When

the wolf totem was superseded

by the
As

Lycaean, or lupine, Zeus, the ritual was preserved, but


the victim became a

man
still

consecrated to the god.


held that

the body of believers

by

tasting his flesh

they were transformed into wolves, they assumed the

name

of Xvkol
;

exactly as the
of

initiates of

Bacchus became

^cLKxoi

the devotees of Bassareus (the Fox-Dion3^sos),


;

Bassarids
Arcti.

and those

the ursine Artemis

{dpKTO'i),

There

is

no such thing as a stationary

civilisation

however slow
people,

may

be the intellectual evolution of a

the religious ideas of to-day are not those of

yesterday.
us, primitive

Consequently,

it

must be confessed

that, for

totemism
is

is

largely a sealed book, limited as

our knowledge

to survivals,

more

or less corrupt, of
applies

a vanished creed.
'

The description

equally to

Cf. Frazer, Pausanias, vol. iv. p. 189.

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


to

ii

the fragmentary indications of classical literature and the


detailed

accounts

of

the

travellers

who have
;

studied totemism as practised by the


the difference
is

modern savage

purely one of degree.

And

yet,

if

we

confine ourselves to the

phenomena
is

of

most usual occurdraft a sort of

rence

among

savages,

it

possible to

totemic code, whose articles are customs or beliefs that

have their counterparts,

many

or few, in both classical

and

non-classical religions.

Here we have what

may

be

regarded as a practical test of the universality of totemism


in the beginning
is is
;

for

if

the tree

is

known by

his fruits, it

equally certain that the original identity of doctrines

proved by the identity of the practices which are the

logical result of those doctrines.

We
I.

should

be

inclined

to

formulate

the

code

of

totemism as follows

:
are
neither
killed

Certain animals

nor eaten,

hut

man

rears specimens and tends them. Examples are the cow, the cat, the sheep, the hawk, the goose, hen, and hare among the Celts &c., in Egypt
;

of

Britain

the fish in Syria

the

bear

among
;

the

Ainos (whose

women sometimes
in
;

suckle the cubs)

the eel

Samoa the dog among the Kalangs of Java and the eagle among the Moquis of Arizona.^ In Hellenic countries we find many cases of tabooed animals,
and the crayfish
;

fed and reared because they were the property of

god

for instance, the holy sheep of Helios at Apollonia


;

in Epirus

the heifers sacred to Persephone at Cyzicus

^
;

the mice of Apollo at


'

Hamaxitus
v. 12.

in

the Troad

''

the

Caesar, Bell. Gall.

^
''

Robertson Smith, Religion Frazer, Totemism, p. 14.


Aelian, Hist.

of

the-

Semites, p. 173.
153.

Reinach, Traite d'&piqvaphie grecque,

p.

>

Anim.

xii.

5.

12
bears,

CULTS, MYTHS,
eagles,

AND RELIGIONS
oxen at Hierapolis
;

horses,

and

the

geese of Juno on the capitol at

Rome, &c.
is

It is

evident
it

that the idea of divine property

secondary, as

could

only come into existence at a time when an organised


sacerdotal class

was already administering,

in

its

own

interests, the properties attributed to the god.


all

Originally

these were totemic animals, like the red dogs of the

Kalangs of Java.
II.

Mourning

is

worn

for

the

accidental
;

death of a
it

member

of a particular

animal species

and

is

buried

with the same honours as a member of the clan.

This was the case with a crab at Seriphos,- with the wolf
at Athens,^ the heifer in Egypt, ^ the goat at Mendes,'^ the
gazelle in Arabia, the owl in

Samoa, the hyena among the

Wanikah of West Africa, the cobra at Travancore,^ and the hen among certain Indian tribes in South America.'' The fact that several of these animals are not domestic,
but dangerous even, excludes the hypothesis
able enough on a priori grounds
gratitude.
III.

improbapplies

of

a cult inspired bj'

Occasionally

the

alinicntary

interdiction

only

to

a part of the animal's body.

Genesis mentions

and

explains

by

a
:

legend^
^

the

ban against eating the tendon


says that
animals.^

of the thigh

Herodotus

the Egyptians

abstained from the heads of


of

Among

the

Omahas

North America, the

Lucian,

Aelian, Hist.

De Dea Syria, 41. Anim. xiii. 26.


Rhod.
41.
cf.
ii.

Schol. Apoll.

124.

Herodotus,
Ibid.
ii.

ii.
;

'"

46

Diodorus,

i.

83, 84.

^
'

Frazer, Totemism, pp. 22 5^. Jevons, Introduction to the History of Religions, p. iiS.

'"^

Genesis xxxii. 33. Herodotus, ii. 39.

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


members
of

13

the clan of
;

Black Shoulders
the
'

may

not eat
its

the tongue of a buffalo head, nor the

Eagles

'

cannot touch

Hangas

its ribs.^

These partial taboos are

due to a compromise with the primitive taboo applying


to the

whole animal, and were dictated by the practical


life.

needs of
IV.

When

animals, ordinarily spared, are killed under

the stress of urgent necessity, the slayers address excuses to

them, or strive by various artifices


of the taboo
:

to

extenuate the violation

in other words, the murder.

This fact explains the ritual of the Bouphonia at Athens.-

The

ox,

by eating the sacred


ended

cakes,

was supposed
trial

to go

voluntarily to his death, and the


his dispatch

mock

held after

in a verdict of guilty against the knife,


sea.

which was accordingly thrown into the


the priest

At Tenedos,
Dionysus was

who

offered

up a young

bull to

attacked with stones.


of

In Corinth, the annual sacrifice

a goat to Hera Acraea was performed by foreign

ministers hired for the purpose,

and even these were

careful to place the knife in such a

way

that the victim

seemed

to kill itself

by

accident.'^

In the tribe of

Mount
totem
South

Gambier (Southern
in case of famine,

Australia), a

man

only

kills his

and then he expresses


flesh.
^

his grief at

having to eat

its

Some
to

tribes

of

New

Wales do not
Corinthians,

kill

their totems themselves, but, like the

employ strangers

do so

after

which they

eat without scruple.''


until

The Bechuanas never kill a lion they have made their apologies, and the slayer must

Frazer, Totemism, p. ii. Cf. Robertson Smith, Religion of the Semites, pp. 304 sqq. Ihid. pp. 305, 306. Frazer, Totemism, p. 7.
Ibid. p. 19.

'"

14

CULTS, MYTHS,
purification.^

AND RELIGIONS
for

undergo a
of the

In North America an Outaouak

Bear clan excuses himself to the bear


kill

having

been forced to
are hungry.

him, and explains that his children

V. The tabooed animal


ritually sacrificed.

is

mourned

for after

it

has been

The Thebans,' says Herodotus,-' do not sacrifice rams but hold them sacred. On one day in the year,
'

'

however, on the feast of Zeus, they flay and cut up

one single ram and cover the image of Zeus with


skin.
. .
.

its

This done,

all

who

are

in

the temple beat

themselves, lament the death of the ram, and then bury


it

in a sacred tomb.'

According

to

Frazer,^

Californian

tribe,

which
buzzard
;

revered the buzzard, used to hold a yearly festival at

which the chief ceremony was the


without spilling a drop of
its

killing of a
It

blood.

was then skinned

the feathers were kept to

make

a sacred garment for the


in

medicine-man, and the body buried


the lamentations of old

holy ground, to

women.
is

The
the god

similarity

between the two narratives


is

striking.

In Herodotus, the animal's skin


;

placed on the statue of

but this ceremonial detail cannot be primitive,

as images of the deity are of no very great antiquity.

Probably, in the beginning, the skin was reserved for the


sacrificer or chief-priest,

the equivalent
women

of the Californian

medicine-man.

The mourning
Adonis
is

of the Syrian

for the

death of

susceptible of a like explanation, though the

'

Frazer, Totemism, p. 19.


Ibid. p. 19.

'

Herodotus, ii. 42. Frazer, Totemism,

(Macaulay's translation.)
p. 15.

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


primitive ritual oi the Adonia
is

15
of

obscure.

The object

the lamentations, following as they

did the sacrifice of a


off,

totem, appears to have been to lighten, or quite throw


the load of responsibility incurred.'

However
of

certain,

however imminent the resurrection


worshippers must
still

the

god,

his

bewail his death

a fact too easily

paralleled to need insisting upon.

VI.
in

Men

put on the skins of certain animals, especially


ceremonies.

religious

Where

totemism

exists,

these

animals are totems.

Among

the Tlinkits of North America, the men, on

solemn occasions,

appear completely disguised in the

skins of animal totems.

The Condor

clans of Peru orna-

ment themselves with the bird's feathers. Among the Omahas, whose totem is the buffalo, the boys arrange
their hair in

two

curls,

in imitation of buffalo

horns.

Among
is

the Southern Slavenians, a male child, at birth,

clothed in a wolf-skin, while an old


'
:

woman

sallies

out of

the house and cries


wolf.'
^

she-wolf has brought forth a

It

was on record that the new-born Zalmoxis


in a bear's hide."-

was enveloped
totem

During the celebration

of certain rites, the


is

men

of an Australian tribe, whose


it

the wild dog, or dingo, mimic


all

by howling and
is

walking on

fours.

Classical antiquity
is

fruitful of

examples

though, here, totemism


for

only conjectural.

Thus the candidate Sabazius was invested with the skin


'

admission to the mysteries of


of a

fawn

"'

the

Robertson Smith,

op.

cit.

p. 412.

It is only necessary to recall

what

still

occurs on

and the following days.

The
joy of

votaries of a dead
all

Good Friday God mourn until

He

shall rise again to the


*

hearts.

'

Frazer, Totemism, pp. 27-33. Ibid. pp. 32-33. Demosthenes, De Corona, p. 260.

i6

CULTS, MYTHS,
girls of Attica,

AND RELIGIONS
ol five

young
part

between the ages

and

ten,

were called apKTot


in
;

[she-hears), and, clothed as such,

took

the
^

cult

of

bear-goddess,
starting

the
for

Brauronian
Hierapolis

Artemis

while

the
it,

pilgrims

sacrificed a sheep, ate


skin.2

and covered themselves with the


of of

We

have already mentioned the Egyptian

rite

clothing the statue of the

Theban god with the skin

a sacrificed ram
it

and we have observed that originally


priest

must have been the

and not the statue that

was covered.
of a sacrificed
of

Robertson Smith broached an ingenious

theory, that the widespread custom of donning the skin

animal gave birth to the plastic types

the

animal-headed

Egyptian

gods

Bast,

Sekhet,

Khnum, &c.-^ His hypothesis is the more probable since the passage of Herodotus allows us to assume a period of transition, during which the skin was placed,
not on the
sacrificer,

but on the image of a divinity

supposed to be present.
VII. Clans and individuals take the names of animals.

Where totemism

exists, these
is
;

animals are totems.

The habit
of

almost universal

among

the Indians

and examples are also numerous in it seems as though the animal names bestowed on the nomes, or cantons, must have been totemic. In the Hellenic world we meet clans like
North America
Australia.^

In Egypt

the

Cynadae

of

Athens, the Porcii of Rome, and the


;

along with nations Hke Hirpi (wolves) of Samnium the Myrmidons (ants), the Mysians (mice), the Lycians
Frazer, Totemism, p. 40. Lucian, De Dea Syria, c. 55.
Cf.

'

2 3

Lang, Myth, Ritual, and Religion, ed.

2, vol.

ii.

p.

129.

Frazer, Totemism, pp. 61-82.

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


(wolves),

17

and the Arcadians


the Arcadians
is

(i.q.

Arctadians, bears).

The

case

of

pecuHarly interesting, as

we
by

know
Hera.'

there existed in the country a cult of an ursine

Artemis, Callisto,

who was changed

into

bear

Lubbock and Spencer have subscribed


that totemism

to

the view

had

its

origin in the

weakness of primitive
;

man

for

assuming an animal's name

so,

the grand-

children of the warrior Serpent might convince themselves that they were descended

from the actual

reptile.

Unfortunately, the theory starts from the false premise


that

the

idea of descent

is

the essence of totemism

while, as a matter of fact,

it is

simpl}^ the hypothesis of

a savage groping after an explanation of the immemorial


alliance

between the animal clan and


animal nomenclature
is

his

own.

The

facility of

an

effect,

not a cause,

of totemism.

VHL

In many
its

instances, the clan carries the

image

of

an animal on

ensigns

and arms.

The individual may


it.

paint this image on his body, or tattoo himself with

Mr. Frazer has adduced


this practice, in
is

many American examples


of the tutelar

of

which the image

animal

that of the totem.-

In the ancient world

wolf figuring on the ensigns of


those of Gaul
;

we find the Rome, the wild boar on

while other considerations suggest that

both wolf and boar were once totems among the two
peoples.

In Egypt the

hawk blazoned on
It
is

the king's

banner was undoubtedly the totem of the family which


founded the Egyptian royal house.
remarkable
that the Greeks themselves tried to establish a relationship

between the
'

facts of totemism, as observed in

Egypt,

Cf. Berard, Origine des cultes arcadiens, p. 130.

Frazer, Totemism, pp. 29-31.

i8

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

and the choice of animals for ensigns. We read in The second explanation which they give Diodorus
:

'

touching the worship of sacred animals


the inhabitants of Egypt,

is

couched thus
oft

who beforetime were

beaten

by

their enemies,

through their ignorance of the art of

war, conceived the idea of having rallying signs in their


battles.

Now
them

these signs were representations

of

the

animals
affixed

which they venerate to-day,

and the

chiefs

to the point of their pikes, in

view of each

rank

of soldiers.

The

said

their victory, the}^ regarded

marks contributing much to them as the cause of their


kill

salvation,

and

for

very gratitude forbore to

any

of

the animals so depicted.

Afterwards this custom became

an

article of religion.'

Diodorus gives three explanations


the origin of totemism in Egypt.
at least the advantage of clearly

none

rational

of

The one quoted has

establishing the fact that the sacred animals appeared

on the Egyptian ensigns

precisely as the natives of the


their
shields,

Upper Darling engrave their totem on and as several American tribes in time
sticks

of

war carry

surmounted by pieces

of

bark on which their


probable that the

animal totems are painted,precede troops on the march,


animal-ensign
represents
shall

As the standards always


it

is

the

animal-augur or animallittle

guide which we
(see XI).

have to consider a
dangerous,

later

IX. The totemic animal,

if

is

supposed

to

spare the members of the totemic clan, but only when they
belong to
it

by birth.
lies

This

belief

at

the root

of

the totemic ordeal,

examples of which are found

in the classical period.

In

Diodorus,

i.

86,

Frazer, op.

cit.

p. 30.

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


Senegambia the men
are

19

of the Scorpion clan declare they


;

never bitten by the creature

the

Psyllians

of

Marniarica
of

(Eastern Tripoli), as well as the Ophiogenes


considered
fact,

Parium,
^

themselves proof against snake-

bites.

In

the

Psyllians

exposed their new-born


;

children to serpents as a test of legitimac}^

and to-day

the
their

]\Ioxos of Peru,

whose totem

is

the jaguar, submit

medicine-men to a similar
is

ordeal.-

Among

the

Bechuanas there

a Crocodile clan, which expels any

member who
as

has been bitten by a crocodile, or so


its
t:n\.-^

much

splashed by water from a stroke of


of

exposure
Mars),

Romulus and Remus

(sons

of

The the Wolf


as her

whom the she- wolf by sparing recognises offspring, may also be classed as a kind of totemic
X. Animal totems help ami protect
totemic clan.
the

ordeal.
of the

members

There

w^as

a tale in

Egypt that one

of the ancient

kings had been saved from death


carried

by a

crocodile,

who
The

him

across
of

Lake Moeris on

his

back.^

Greek legends

animal preservers,

like Arion's

dolphin

and the fox


origin
;

of Aristcmienes,

have probably a similar


will

and the same explanation

cover the numer-

ous traditions of fabulous heroes fed by beasts.


ancients and moderns, however, are in error,
1

Both

when they

Strabo mentions a tribe of Ophiogenes at Parium on the Propontis. They believed themselves akin to serpents and descended from a The males were credited with the power of curing viper snake-hero. bites by the laying-on of hands (Strabo, xiii. 58S). A slip of Pliny's locates them in Paros in insula Paro (xxviii. 30), and the variant Cypro has led some of the moderns to assign them to Cyprus. Elsewhere (vi. 2, 2), Pliny citing Crates of Pergamus says the Ophiogenes lived on the Hellespont around Parium (in Hellesponto circa Parium) and in this he coincides with Varro. Aelian also speaks

'

"

of a tribe of

Ophiogenes in Phrygia, claiming descent from Halia, who became pregnant to a sacred serpent.
-

Frazer, p. 20.

Ibid. p. 21.

Diodorus,

i.

89.

c 2

20

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
first
;

attribute totemism to a sentiment of gratitude for the


services
of

animals.

In

the

place,

most totems
domes-

belong to the dangerous species


the inost useful animals
ticated

and, in the second,

those which have been


itself.

by

manowe

both their usefulness and their

domestication to totemism

The idea

of gratitude,

like the idea of relationship,

has no value beyond that

of a convenient explanation, invented to account for a

state of things the origin of

which was already forgotten.

XI. Animal totems


serve

foretell the future to the faithful,

and

them as guides.

In Greece and

Rome we

can only suppose that the


;

augural

animals were former totems

but, in

Egypt,

Diodorus distinctly states that the hawk, the totem of


the royal family, was venerated because
future. 1
it

foretold the

In Australia and Samoa the kangaroo, the crow, and the owl premonish their fellow clansmen of events At one time the Samoan warriors went so far to come.
as to rear owls for the sake of their vaticinatory qualities
in war,-

In this connection
the
British

we may

recall the prophetic

hare of

queen

Boadicea

(Budicca),

who

governed a country where, in Caesar's time, the hare

was fed but not


that
it

eaten,

which
'^

is

tantamount

to saying
is

was treated as a totem. '

Another instance

the stor}^ of the wolf which guided the Samnites to the

foundation of their colony.

This last example

is

the

more
It

interesting

that

the Samnites in question called


hirpus, their

themselves
is,

Hirpini

from

word

for wolf.^

therefore, extremely probable that they looked

upon

the wolf as a totem.


>

Diodorus,

i.

87.
Ixii.

Frazer, op.

cit.

p. 23,

'

Dion Cassius,

9.

'

Compare the

pillar of

cloud or

lire

Israelites in the desert

(Exodus

xiv. 21).

(Yahveh) which guided the Strabo, vi. 12


'"

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


This use of animal totems for purposes of augury
all likelihood,
is,

21
in

of great antiquity.

Men must soon have


were acutcr than their

realised that the senses of animals

own
their

nor

is it

surprising that they should have expected


is

totems

that

to

say,

their

natural

allies

to

forewarn them both of unsuspected dangers and of those


provisions
of

nature,

wells

especially,

which animals

seem

to scent b}^ instinct.^


;

Divination by animals can have had no other origin

and the h3'po thesis


at an earlier period

also explains

why

the augural animals

seem

to

have been both guides, augurs,

and totems
so

at one

and the same time.


the

The bird which

often

precedes the war-chariots,

on ancient Greek
part of guide and

vases, certainly played

double

augur.

XII. The juembers

of a totemic clan frequently believe

themselves related to their animal totem by the bond of a

common
I

descent.
last,

put this characteristic

though many have seen

in
it

it

the very quintessence of totemism.

To

my

mind

is

simply a vain thing foolishly invented


to

b}'

totemic

man,
his
is

account, either for certain taboos whose origin

he failed to comprehend, or for the traditional

name

of

own

clan.

Still,

this

attempt at an explanation
it

very

old,

and traces

of

exist in classical antiquity.

Thus the Ophiogenes


serpent,

of

Parium, whose totem was the

believed

as

their

name

indicates

that

they

sprang from a snake. 2

According to an Aeginetan fable

recorded by Strabo, the Myrmidons were ants transformed


into
'

men

after a plague

which depopulated the whole

Tacitus, translating an Alexandrine author, will have it that the Jews adored the ass because wild asses had re\-ealed to Moses the existence of a spring {Histories, v. 3).
-

See the Stephanus-Didot Thesaurus,

s.v.

22
island.^

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
(ant) itself
;

This legend, without a doubt, must have grown

up round the name Myrmidon

on the other

hand, Ophiogenes (the serpent-born) must be the translation of a genealogical legend coined to explain the tribal

intimacy with serpents.

of

The Gaulish patronymics beginning with the name an animal, and terminating in genos, which indicates

a divine filiation
(crow-son), &c.

are

e.g.

Matiigenos (boar-son), Brannogenos


reflec-

themselves no more than a

tion of traditions associating the cult of

an animal with

a certain family.

The Semitic
beast.
It

tribes

have furnished
totemic

Robertson Smith with several instances of a supposed


kinship between
races examples

man and
are

Among modern
is
;

legion.

enough
to

to refer the to
it,

reader to Mr, Frazer's collection


easy,

add

though

would be labour

lost.^

From

the foregoing evidence

it

follows conclusively

that the different countries composing the ancient world

show unequivocal traces of taboos and customs analogous The one thing to those of modern totemic religions. lacking is a clear and definite statement of that compact,
It

which to us appears the very essence of totemism.

must be conceded, however, that nowhere


countries

even

in

totemic

is

the

idea

distinctly

formulated.

Almost everywhere

it

has been replaced by the notion of

relationship or an exchange of services in the remote


- Frazer, Totemism, viii. i6. pp. 3 sqq. purposely refrain from classing exogamy with the logical developments of totemism. Exogamy, like the horror of incest, which is an attenuated form of it, springs from the taboo of the blood of the clan. As the members of a clan are recognised by their possession of a common totem, it is only natural that totemism and exogamy should often go in pairs but exogamy is neither an offshoot of totemism nor insepar^

Strabo,

able from

it (cf.

Annee

Sociologiqiie, vol.

iii.

p. 218).

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


past
;

23

in other words,

by a

later

attempt to explain the

meaning
Still,

of the old taboos.

as the idea of a pact

is

the only one that accounts


it

for

all

the

phenomena
logically

of

totemism,
to start

remains both

possible

and

sound

from those phenomena

and reascend
in the

to the parent conception.

We

have shown

that the facts in question were of fairly frequent occurrence

Mediterranean world before the Christian era

it

seems, therefore, perfectly legitimate to consider


as the fruits

them

dried,

perhaps, but authentic nevertheless

of a train of

thought similar to that observable at the

present day in both Americas, part of Asia, Africa, and

Oceania.

The conclusion may not have the


;

cast-iron
least,
is

rigour of a mathematical demonstration


it

but, at

shares that high degree of probability which


in

the

utmost we can expect

any investigation

of religious

and

social data.

We may

also

approach the question from another,


philosophic, point of view,

more general and


hypothesis,

and show
facts

that primitive totemism would be an absolutely necessary

even

if

we had

neither ethnological
it.

nor literary evidence to support

Attempts at defining the homo sapiens have stopped


at

the

formula
is

' :

Man

is

religious

animal.'

The

definition

scrupulously exact

on the one condition that


restraints

for

we take religion in its widest sense, and not as a s^Tionym Primarily religion is modern theological doctrines.
a system of taboos
energies

spiritual
man.
of

on the brute
religious codes

and

instincts of
of

The

first

were
oldest

collections

prohibitions and interdictions, the

and most universal

which forbade the shedding


group united by
ties of

of blood within the limits of a

blood.

Superstition, however, under this system, sapped

24
all

CULTS, MYTHS,
the energies of man.

AND RELIGIONS
The taboos applied
;

alike to

the human, animal, and vegetable kingdoms

between

which the savage

an

animist by nature

was incapable
man
to

of discriminating with precision. of taboos centred

Now,

so far as the system


of

round the relations


of family

man,

it

formed the nucleus

and

social law, of morality


it

and

of

politics

so far,

however, as
it

concerned the
totemism.
curbing

animal and vegetable world,

constituted

Totemism

or

the whole

body

of prohibitions

human
life

activity in its dealings with animal

and plant

is

not merely a correlative of law and morality


;

in

their infancy

it

is

inextricably mingled and blent

with

both,

just

as,

in

the

eyes

of

primitive

man
plants
vital

and

the

child,

human

beings,

animals,

and

form but one kingdom, permeated by the same


principle.

We

have said the oldest taboos only protect the


;

even in the Decalogue, the words members of a clan Thou shall not kill have not the universal force with which, theoretically, at least, we credit them. But, at the time of the Commandments, the clan had already

emerged from the intermediate, or

tribal,

stage,

and

was now a

people.

Clan-alliances, the

germ

of a larger

national unity, were early necessitated


for existence
;

by the

struggle

isolated clans disappeared,

and the survival

of a

group depended on the vigour of

its social instincts.

Now, with the haziest of boundary-lines between the kingdoms of nature plant, animal, and man it was natural

enough that human clans should contract


clans or both.

alliances,

not

only with each other, but also with animal or vegetable

human
species

As a result, the protective taboos in the came to include the animal or vegetable with which it was leagued and on whose aid and
clan

PHENOMENA OF ANIMAL TOTEMISM


protection
it

25
called

relied. ^

Thus we gain what may be

an a

priori

explanation of the

fundamental compact

constituting

totemism
of

compact
and

which

is

simply
taboo,

an extension

the

universal

primitive

Thou
'

shall nol kill.

Truth to say, these primitive alliances are no more strange than the well-known covenant, between Israel and Jehovah, on which the Mosaic religion is based. Judging from experience, men could no more expect succour from Jehovah than from an animal or vegetable
clan.

Yet they believed they could, and from that belief drew an enduring force which to this day sustains them in their trials.

CHAPTER

II
^

THE THEORY OF SACRIFICE


Sacrifice
is

the crucial point of

all cults,

the essential
it is is

bond

between

man and
;

deity.

In this respect
the
latter

comparable to prayer

but

whereas

a
of

spiritual appeal, the former entails the

employment
in

material

substance

forfeited

or

destroyed

the

sacrificial act.

The general conception of sacrifice is that offered by man to the divinity in order to
his favour
;

of a gift

conciliate

in other

words,
of

it is

a purchase of friendship
'

by

the
'

mammon
prevail
in the

unrighteousness.

Gifts,'

says

Hesiod,

upon gods and reverend


'

kings.'
'

The
de-

abbe Bergier
it

Dictionnaire de Theologie
to

defines
is

as

'

the offering

up

God
If

of

an object which

stroyed in His honour, as a recognition of His sovereign

dominion over
closely,

all

things.'

we analyse
is

this sentence
:

the

underlying

absurdity

apparent

how

does the destruction of any object do honour to any

person

The abbe proceeds


for a

'
:

It

is

not in the least


slight present
;

anomalous
to a rich

poor

man

to

make some

man who

has done him a kindness

he considers

Lecture given in Paris, 1902, at the Universite populaire, rue

Richer.

26

THE THEORY OF SACRIFICE


that,

27
gift,
still

though

his benefactor

may

not need the


fail

an expression of gratitude cannot


There
is,

to please him.'

perhaps, a certain crudity in the notion,

but with that we are not concerned.


of
is

Here

in the eyes
Its principle

most
that

critics is

the root idea of sacrifice.

man

behaves towards divinity as he would

to-

wards one or more persons endowed with powers vastly


superior to his

seek

own potentates whose with empty hands.


were true that the
gift-sacrifice

aid

it

were

ill

to

If it

was the primitive

form

of sacrifice, it

would

also

be necessary to prove that

peoples on a lower plane of religious belief regard the

superhuman and mj^sterious

beings,

upon

whom
;

they
that

conceive themselves to depend, as


is

men

writ large

to say, as personalities subject to the


frailties

same

limitations

and

as

man, but
In
that

gifted with higher or


case,

more

active

faculties.

we should

find

them

treating those beings precisely as their experience has

shown
to

it

advisable to treat the grandees of this world,


the
priests

wit,

and

chiefs.

Now,

the

etiquette

observed bv every non-civilised race forbids a

man

to

approach

his chief

without a present.
If

This constitutes

the propitiatory

sacrifice.

he has received a favour, he


gift,

shows
called
chief
is

his gratitude

by

a fresh

and

this

may

be

the sacrifice of thanksgiving.


displeased,

Or he thinks the

and

to appease him, offers a sacrifice

of pacification or expiation.^

All the

above

is

true,

but

it

is

true only of a

com-

paratively recent period in the history of mankind.

You know what

is

understood by the doctrine of

' Goblet d'Alviella, Revue dc runiversitc de Bnixelles, 1897-S9, I have more than once borrowed textually from this pp. 499-500. excellent article.


28

CULTS, MYTHS,
It
is

AND RELIGIONS
all

evolution.

the knowledge that

things are in

motion, and subject to a slow transformation governed

by

certain determinable laws.

One of the axioms which should guide the sociologist who accepts this doctrine is that our modern ideas,
because they are modern, cannot have been the ideas of
primitive man, but

must have been evolved from

his

by

a gradual process of transformation.

Now
made
an
to

the theory which considers sacrifice as a gift the


divinity

the

divinity being regarded as


trebly

immortal

and

therefore

formidable

man
it still

cannot hold good for the beginning of things, for

dominates the superstition of to-day.

Open one of the recent books the of Stheno, the Cordicoles Romaines
'

'

Chinoiseries

'

'

of

Tery,
or

the
the

'

Dossier

des

Pelerinages

'

of

Noel
the

Parfait,

excellent

articles

published in

Semaine Religieuse
will

by the abbe Hemmer


of Saint
of
let

and

you

find

that the

essential character of present-day devotion, say the cult

Anthony of Padua, lies in the idea of exchange Good Saint, let me pass my examination, gif-gaf.
'

me

find

my

umbrella and

will give you,

according

to the state of
sous.

my

purse, a

hundred francs or a hundred


in advance,
if

You may even have them


in

that will

weigh

my

favour.'
I

Gentlemen,
or

do not say that


;

this

is

either

good
not

bad, childish or reasonable

we

are

students,

tractarians.

But, without leaving our

own

times, ob-

serve that, besides these sacrifices consisting of gifts or


fines
self

privations which the believer religion contains another and far


The

inflicts

upon himI

more mysterious
:

rite,

hard for the non-elect to understand

mean

the

so-called Sacrifice of the Mass.

salient features are


THE THEORY OF SACRIFICE
these.

29

The

priest,

impersonating

the

community,

absorbs, under the form of bread and wine, the tlesh and

blood of the deity in order to impregnate himself with


the divine essence.
to

At

intervals the faithful are allowed


;

participate

in

this sacrifice

but since the Middle


is

Ages, from motives of pure expedienc}', only the bread


given, not the wine.
I

have no sympathy with the sceptic


himself

Voltairean

he
rite

calls
;

who

jests at this

solemn and ancient

he would be much better occupied in studying

its origin

and development.
or
is

The question whether the


is

godhead
question
opinion,

is
;

not present in the host

not a scientific
is

the

answer in the affirmative


of
:

only

an

and admits
is

no discussion.

The problem we

have to solve
there

this

Why,

in the religion of to-day, are

two forms

of sacrifice

one

of the earth earthy,


(I refer,

quite clear, and universally intelligible


to

of course,

the gift-sacrifice)

the other obscure in the extreme,

shrouded
that the

in mysticism,

and so peculiar
is

in its character

communicant himself
?

none too

sure

what

he

is

doing

If

we concede

the theory of evolution,

it

is

certain

that

the straightforward sacrifice

by

gift

must be a

recent growth, while conversely the perplexing sacrifice


of the deity himself

must date from a past correspondingly


be asked,

remote.

But

it

may

how

can the

sacrifice of

the Mass be older than the other,


instituted less than

when the Mass was two thousand years ago, whereas the Greeks, Romans, and Egyptians knew and practised the
three
?

gift-sacrifice

or

four

thousand years before the

birth of Christ

The Egyptians, Greeks, and Romans were highly civilised nations, and thereThat
is

precisely the fallacy.

30

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
But,
also
its

fore, like ourselves,

cognizant of the gift-sacrifice.

though distinctly reticent on the subject, they were


extreme antiquity.
Moreover, a nation

acquainted with the more mystic type, and aware of

may have lived two

thousand years

before another and yet represent a


of civilisation.

more advanced stage

day, and compare

Take an Australian savage of the present him with one of those Greeks who,
ago,

twenty-five hundred years

created the beautiful


of

monuments
primitive

of
?

Athens.

Which
of

the

two
would

is

the

man

Which

the

two

have
on

the more rudimentary


religion
is
?

the
;

more primeval

notions

The savage, obviously. The savage, then, our principal witness and for the last hundred
this
is

years he has been cross-examined with the utmost care.

Now
tells

what happens.
tale.

An
to

Australian aboriginal
for

you a strange
is

He

says,

example, that
animal,

he

absolutely

forbidden
is
if

eat

certain
is

because that animal

his ancestor.

This

surprising

enough at
that
the
all

first

but,

you

are a reader, you

Greeks,
testified

the
to

Egyptians, and
similar
beliefs

remember the Hebrews

have

lingering

among
moderns
in

them
have

as vestiges of the past


it.

survivals as the

You
a

conclude then that the existing savage

resembles

bed

of
If

limestone
dig to

cropping

out

an

alluvial country.

we

a sufficient

depth under
;

the gravel,

we
if

strike

the

same limestone again


five

and

analogously
civilisation,

we

delve far enough into the history of


to

from three

thousand

years before

Christ,

we

rediscover our savage's articles of faith.

Thus, the
catch a glimpse
of our far-off

twentieth-century savage enables

us to

more than a glimpse of the opinions ancestors, members of races that ripened
or

THE THEORY OE SACRIFICE


earlier into civilisation,

31

but nevertheless passed through


still

the phase in which the savage

remains.
If it

To return

to the gift-sacrifice.

were a primitive
the belief in one
;

conception, then the lowest strata of savage humanity

would exhibit two phenomena


or

firstly,

more gods

after the pattern of

men

and, secondly,

the existence

of priests

acting as representatives and


priest

treasurers of the god.

For without the


is

there

is

no

gift-sacrifice

a pair of visible hands

always necessary

to receive the offering in lieu of the unseen God.

But the case


primitive religions

is

not

so.

On

the contrary, the most

know

neither a personal god

made
but

in

the image of man, nor a priest, the deputy of that god.

The Bible might be quoted


god,
it

as an exception

if

from the very beginning the Bible assumes a personal

knows nothing

of the priest.

The

priest

is

a late-

comer

in the history of Israel.

And

as for the anthrois

pomorphic deity

of the Pentateuch, he
B.C.,

barely older

than the year 1000

the earliest date to which the

present version of Genesis can be attributed.

millen-

nium before Christ is little more than the day before yesterday and the proof is easy. We all know now that there was a long period in the history of man when he knew neither metals, domestic animals, nor cereals.

Now
period

the

redactor

of

Genesis

is

so

comparatively

recent a person that he had no inkling of any such


:

Adam

tends the trees in the garden of Eden,


himself

and, immediately upon his expulsion, betakes


to agriculture, as though

men from
trees

the

first

must have
Therefore
Genesis
is

been familiar with


the writer to

fruit

and
the

cereals.

whom we owe
his

biblical

modern, and
primitive.

idea

of

a man-like god cannot

be

32

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

On

the other hand, the animal

or animal-headed

Egypt carry us back to a much earlier epoch, anywhere between 5000 B.C. and 6000 B.C. Thus we may plausibly conclude that long before the divinity was indeities of

vested with

human

traits

he was envisaged under the

form of certain animals.

And now comes


the most primitive of
religion

striking

coincidence.

Go

to

to

modern savages and you find a which the man-god is unknown, and the
all in all.

animal or plant god

It

is
;

not an individual
it

animal or plant which they adore


species

is

a particular

^animal

or

vegetable

they imagine are bound to

members of which themselves by a mysterious


to
their minds,

the

and immemorial
protectors,

tie.

These,

are

the

the talismans, of the tribe or clan.

More

than

this,

they are apt to persuade themselves that

they are lineal descendants of the guardian animal or


plant,

and proceed,

logically enough, to

adopt

its

name.
call

For instance, certain North American Indians


themselves
Beavers.

They hold that their ultimate ancestor was a beaver, who miraculously brought forth they will not pass a beaver without some a man
;

token of respect or attachment


anecdotes of beavers

and they are


their
lives

fertile in

who saved

beavers
them
all

who showed them manner of services.

fords

beavers

who

did

From time

to time, primitive peoples, addicted to the

cult of animals, indulge in a peculiar type of sacrifice.

Suppose that a tribe an epidemic


the mascot
;

is

afflicted

with famine, drought, or

it

argues that, for some reason or other,

beaver has withdrawn its countenance and protection. To effect a reconciliation, two
methods
will

say, the

be employed.

On

the one hand, the tribe

THE THEORY OF SACRIFICE


will offer gifts

33
its

in other words, carry foodto


eccentric.

tutelar

animal

this is the gift-sacrifice.


is

At other times the


step
is

remedy

more

The
;

first

to

convene

a grand synod of tribal chiefs

then a beaver must be

caught and killed; and,


a portion of
its

finally,

every

man

present eats

flesh.

The point
it is

of this

ceremony

is

supposed to
tion,

lie

in the fact that


it

a sort of self-deifica-

inasmuch as

directly increases the element of

divine energy inherent in every man.

In a word,

it is

savage sacrament, resorted to in supreme moments of


distress or peril

a communion

in

which the
all

sacrifice of
it.

a divine object imparts divinity to

that eat of

The great discovery


of Cambridge,

of Professor

Robertson Smith,

who

died there at an early age in 1884,

has shown that

by communion was older and more primitive than the sacrifice by gift that it was, in
sacrifice
;

fact, the oldest

form of

sacrifice

that traces of

it

are

found among the Greeks and Romans as well as among the

Hebrews
churches
rite.

and, lastly, that the

communion

in Christian
sacrificial

is

only an evolution of this primitive

The communion did not originate with Christianity. On the contrary, it was a time-honoured and widely

prevalent institution, especially

among

the half-civilised

communities

of Asia,

where

it

had a great vogue with


of

the lower classes, as the more enlightened section the population had been
of

won over

to the simpler idea

the gift-sacrifice.

To-day, then,

we may

call

it

survival

a
And

survival

from the very childhood


a
perfectly

of

the

world.

here

we have
:

satisfactory

solution to

two problems

firstly,

why

this extraordinary

form

of sacrifice should

have taken so firm a hold on the


;

better half of

mankind

and, secondly,

why

its

primary
in

significance should

have been so obscured both

the

34

CULTS. MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
In the
first

Middle Ages and in our own generation.


case,
it

gained ready and rapid acceptance because


in
its

man

was
past
;

predisposed

favour by
its

his

own

religious

and

in

the

second,
it

import has been easily

obliterated

because

corresponds to an idea as far


of thought as a primitive

removed from modern modes


chip
flint

from a Lebel gun.

Even yet we meet with the notion


take food together a kind of
established between them.

when two men moral and physical bond is


that

Originally this idea

was

still

stronger

but only sacred food could knit the sacred


flesh of the

tie.

Nothing but the

holy animal would serve,

and the solemn mystery


sight of the faithful

of its

death was justified in the

by

their conviction that so

and not
there

otherwise must the mystic bond between the believer

and was

his

god be created and confirmed.


higher
life

Thus

all

of a

in the

primitive

community was

bought by the death and periodic

sacrifice of a god.

And now
which fused
sacrifice

let

us try to outline the evolutionary process

this primitive
gift.

type of

sacrifice

with that of

by

When
had

once agriculture and the domes-

tication of animals

dispelled the

mystery surrounding
life,

the different forms of plant and animal

familiarity

began to breed contempt.

Little

by

little

the idea of a

divinity hedging certain species of animals faded away,

and man began

to create the

godhead

in his

own

likeness.

Yet there remained a tradition


eaten by the community.

of animals sacrificed

and

Therefore both sacrifice and


the belief that

banquet were retained,


anthropomorphic now

in

the

god-

smelt

the blood and inhaled the

smoke

of the burnt-offering.

To provide him with a

representative, a priest assisted at the ceremony, until in

the end he and his ritual completely dwarfed the part

THE THEORY OF SACRIFICE


played by the body of the

35

faithful, and, while the sacrifice

and banquet
inverted.

still

survived, their significance

was wholly
difficult

Gentlemen,

stop here.

The question

is

enough without
problem.

my

proceeding to pile problem upon


I

The point which

wished to bring out

is

this

that in primitive sacrifice the idea of

communion
glance

howfirst

ever

modem

it

may

appear at the

first

is

a factor

of prime

importance.

The English

scholar,

who

discerned this truth, literally revolutionised the study of


religion.

He built, so to speak, a solid bridge between own our day and those dim ages when man bowed down and adored the beast. And this he accomplished by
throwing into
its

proper perspective the primitive and

strangely persistent conception of the god-animal, fated


to be slain

and eaten by

its

worshippers.

venture to

think the discovery involves so


so little recognition that

you

will

much and has found pardon me for having

made

it

the subject of these remarks.

CHAPTER

III

THE ORIGIN AND ESSENCE OF TABOOS ^


Theoretically man's
his physical
lists,

activity has but one limit

that of
kill

powers

he can eat what he pleases,


is

as he

provided always that he

the stronger.

Driven

by his needs and his passions, he stops only before a power superior to his own, and nothing but outside force
can restrain or repress his energy.

But
the past

this

state of

absolute independence
far

is

purely

theoretical.

back as we into In practice look as man submits to an inner or subjective restraint


will

as well as to

an outer or objective one.

Not only does he


for himself, in the

experience obstacles, he creates

them

shape of fears and scruples.


fears

In the course of time these


to themselves law.
still

and scruples have taken

names
precisely

moral law, religious law,


restraining influence on

political

And

as these three laws exist to-day

and

exercise their

human

activity, so

they existed
earliest of
politics,

confused and undivided as yet among the


savage
as

communities.

Morality,

religion,

and
as

we

conceive them, had not so

much
taken

the primitive mind, but


a multitude
1

man

submitted to
which,

dawned on and accepted


as

of

restraints,

a whole,

Lesson given in 1900 at the licole dn Louvre.


36

THE ORIGIN AND ESSENCE OF TABOOS


constituted what
is

37

called the
is
:

system

of taboos.
this,

The
do not

general formula of the taboo

'Do not do

touch

that.'

It is

the English dont, as applied to children.


it

The

taboo, whatever form


it

may

take, has always the one


to

characteristic, that

sets a

bound

human

activity.
is

This path

is

taboo, do not walk there.


it.

This fruit

taboo, do not eat

This

field is

taboo on such a day,


or moral

do not work there.

Thus, unlike

civil, religious,

law, the law of taboo never implies action, but always

abstention
I

it is

a curb, not a whip.

have said
if

this

curb was forged of fears and scruples


set aside brute force

and, in fact,
it is difficult

we

opposed to

force,

to see

what could
is

restrain the energy of

man
lion's

except
scruple.

fear,

which

the

sentiment

that
fears

engenders
the

Now, the savage not only


;

tooth and the serpent's fang


illness

he dreads above everything


inflicted

and death, punishments

by the angry

spirits

with which his imagination peoples the world.


pre-eminently a social animal
;

Man

is

at every stage of

civilisation

he pictures the external world as an integral

part of the same

community

as himself,

and by a natural

generalisation concludes that the spiritual principle, which

he

feels to

be working within him, must be working also

phenomena without him. Before he rises to a definite and consistent idea of godhead, he feels himself surrounded by gods, fears them, and strives to
in the infinite
live at

peace with them.


general cause of taboos, then,
is

The
If

the fear of danger.

man civilised
to steel

now, and with science perpetually at


against the nightmares of childhood

hand

him

still falls

a constant prey to groundless terrors, what must


his thraldom,

have been
act,

when, science yet unborn, every


liable to

no matter how innocent, was

be taken as

38

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
day everlastingly tempted to
with

the direct cause of the next chance mishap which befell

him

Are we not to
temporal
ergo

this

confuse

sequence
hoc

Post hoc,
is

propter

causal

connection

follows
is

A, therefore

the cause of

B the

fallacy

daily

committed by

education and illiteracy

alike.

The savage, lacking the notion

of cause

and

effect

but endowed with a memory, was certain to assign a


given misadventure to some immediately preceding event,

though nine times out


nected.

of ten the

two would be unconsuch or such an act

Thus, in primitive communities, there grew up


:

a vast oral tradition of leading cases

has such or such a fatal consequence

on such or such a

because, when I went out in the snake. If all these hasty generalisations saw I a had taken root in any one community, fear would have suspended all action, and the community would have

day

I fell

and hurt myself,

morning,

perished.
part.

But

here, as in all things, selection played a

The

fears experienced

by the

tribal

magnates

old men, chiefs,

and

priests

were

shared by the rank


all

and

file,

and gave
:

rise to

various scruples

more

or less

widely diffused

the rest were forgotten.


into being.
:

Thus the taboos came


of experience

They cannot be

said to be the result of experience

the everyday lessons

as, that

fire

burns and water drowns

have

no need to be confirmed by any prohibition or


of a religious character.

interdict

Nor yet

are they due to scientific

experiment, to repeatedly verified observations of cause

and
facts.

effect.

The taboos correspond

to

fears,

and the

fears, in their turn, to rash generalisations

from isolated

We have
when we

all

the more reason for this view of the case,

consider the similarly vicious process of thought

THE ORIGIN AND ESSENCE OF TABOOS


in

39

modem
;

superstition.

Every railway company knows


fatal to

that there are fewer travellers on the thirteenth of the

month

every hostess, that

it

is

have thirteen

at table.

Now

this prejudice is

based on a generalisation

from a single instance

the Last

Supper where Jesus sat

down with

the twelve Apostles.

Two

of the thirteen

died before the year was out, and this one accident has

been enough to create a taboo, the


doubtless be
felt for

effects of

which

will

long to come.
gives
his

Even when he
primitive

imagination

free

play,

man

loves

realistic
is

explanation.
essentially

To the
object

savage

dangerous

object

an

dangerous to touch, whence the widespread idea that the


principal cause of danger
is

contact.

Things taboo and

persons taboo, are not to be touched, and are therefore


sacred

intangible in
contact
of
is

the strict sense of the word.

But

why

should

be dangerous

Here the naive

physical

science

the savage comes into play.

dangerous contact
passes from an alien

one by which something dangerous


into ours
:

body

the sting of an insect


of objects

or a snake, for example.

Hence the conception

taboo or tabooed as so
forces,

contact with which

many may produce

reservoirs of dangerous
electrical

and

devastating results.

This

idea suffices to explain

not only

the greater part of the taboos, but also the ceremonial

employed
effects.

in

Polynesia,

and elsewhere,

to

annul their

Thus, a

man who

touches the accursed thing

a
he

tabooed

object absorbs

by

his

act a dangerous
all

element,

capable of injuring both him and

whom

may

touch in his turn.

To

rid himself of this poison

in the system,

reducible, however, to

he has recourse to widely different means, two great classes. Sometimes he

puts himself in contact with a person charged with a

40

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
;

more powerful taboo, and thus passes on the danger sometimes, by without prejudice to its recipient
bathing, he transmits the taboo to the water, which can

absorb

it

with impunity.

In the island of Tonga a


chief,

tabooed person touches the foot-sole of a superior

by pressing it against his stomach. Now, this guileless method of curing a malady by contact with some great one
of the earth has

been held

efficacious

almost to our

own
of

day.

Only by the

light of the

taboo can we penetrate

the inner sense of the ceremony

by which the kings

France

though

neither magicians nor priests

healed
From
by

the species of scrofula


the

known

as the King's Evil.

twelfth century onwards

the

French kings were


this infirmity

supposed to have the power of curing


simply touching the sufferer.

The proof that we have


lies in

here a pagan custom of great antiquity


that St. Louis

the fact
it

most pious of sovereigns thought


rite,

his

duty to christianise the

just as crucifixes

have been

planted on certain menhirs in order to modify the heathen


cult associated with the old stones.
tells

Guillaume de Nangis

us that, while his predecessors merely touched the


St.

patients,

Louis supplemented the treatment with

the sign of the Cross, in the hope, adds the chronicler,


that they would ascribe the cure to the virtue of the

Cross and not to the dignity of the king.

Louis XIV, at

the time of his coronation, and James II of England,

during his exile at


for the Evil
it

St. -Germain,

were

still

asked to touch

the sick men, victims


whom
said,

of a taboo, discharged

on a person

the taboo could not attack.

What

Louis

XIV would have

had

it

been pointed out that

he was forming himself on the model of a Polynesian


chief, is

another question.
desire
to

The

remove taboos, and so

to restore the

THE ORIGIN AND ESSENCE OF TABOOS


liberty of

41
of a

men and
which

things,
in

was the corner-stone

special science,

Greece and

Rome was

called the

science of lustration

and

purification.

Like the taboos

themselves, this science has been of incalculable service


to humanity.
If

the taboo had never been, the savage,

deaf to reason and regardless of the morrow, would have

turned the earth into a wilderness.

him

restraint

and moderation.
the taboo,

The taboo taught But had there been no


equally deaf to

corrective
criticism

to

the savage,

and enamoured
life

of the marvellous,

would have
it,

so enchained his
civilisation

through the fear of losing

that

would have been forever impossible.


gave him back a measure

The

priestly purification

of freedom,

judiciously restricted

by the dread

of contracting

new
of

taboos which might require a complicated and painful


lustration.
priests

Now,

as far

back as we can

go, the

duty

was

to purify.

To
is

the priesthood, then,

man owes
it

his partial liberation from the terrors

which paralysed
;

him.

The conclusion once more the falsity

worthy

of notice

for

shows

of the pet theory of the eighteenth

century, according to which the priesthood was governed

by the purely
If

selfish

motive

of deceiving

men and

con-

fiscating their liberties in its

own

behoof.
it

the taboo served a useful end,


its

was because the

very thought of

violation inspired profound horror.

In the beginning there was no question of a social sanction,

no thought
were,

of punishing the sinner

the crime

itself

begot

the penalty.
it

To
to

violate a taboo, unintentionally

though
In
the

was

expose

oneself

to

death.

civilisations

which are known to us from eye-witnesses,


opening of the nineteenth

like that of Polynesia at the

century, the severity of the penalties has already been


relaxed,

and society

as

represented

by the

chiefs

has

42

CULTS, MYTHS,
itself to
if

AND RELIGIONS
the

taken upon

make hard

way

of transgressors.

And

indeed,

the violation of a taboo exposes the whole

tribe to a dangerous contagion,

and

may

also

provoke

the anger of

spirits, drastic

measures are necessary, both

by way of example, and to appease the irate powers. But clearly punishment by the community is not primitive it begins in the period when respect for the taboo
;

is

on the wane, and the need

arises for a penal


it

code to

reinforce

the chastisement which

was once believed


itself.

would follow inevitably from the offence

'

CHAPTER
TARPEIA

IV
^

'

Why,' asks Plutarch

in the thirty-seventh chapter of his

'

Roman
all

Questions,' 'should

custom have ordained

that,

out of
of

the offerings
left

we make
?
"

to heaven, only the spoils

war should be

to the mercies of

moth and

rust,

untended and unrepaired

Plutarch's questions are

invariably of great interest, for the simple reason that

they hinge upon customs to which his age had


clue.

lost the

Plutarch's answers, however, are usually absurd,

for the equally simple reason that

he brings to the inter-

pretation of prehistoric religious usage the intellectual


stock-in-trade of a philosophic amateur in the
after Christ.
first

century

In the present instance, he hazards two


the problem.

solutions

of

Either the disappearance of


of the exploits

the spoils would

dim the splendour

comfeats

memorated, and spur another generation to fresh


of

arms

or,

on the other hand, there might be some-

thing odious in the notion of perpetuating the

memory

Revue avcheologique, 1908,


Pint. Quaest.

i.

pp. 42-74.

The text is uncertain on one 37, p. 2376. point {irpoaKvvi'iv in the sense of taking care ') but the general sense
-

Rom.

c.

'

is

not in doubt.

43

44
of spilt

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
fields

blood and stricken

precisely
first

as

Greek

opinion deplored the audacity which


in

reared trophies

stone or bronze. ^
:

These specimens of exegesis

speak for themselves

To-day the
class

comment would be out of place. question raised by Plutarch is one of a


of

which the science


is

comparative religion and


:

custom
were

able to answer off-hand


it

if

the

Romans

did

not repair their trophies,


invested
all

was because those trophies


their

with a sanctity of

own which
of the

rendered

contact perilous.
is

The Hebrew Ark

Covenant, to go no further,

a case in point, though

with this difference


in
its

the sanctity of the

Ark was inherent

origin, while the sanctity of spoils wrested from

the

enemy was an

adventitious result of the circum-

stances which

caused them to change hands after the

combat.
II

Among
on the

the early Romans,

who

erected no trophies

field of battle, ^

we

find the spoils

hung

in temples trees

and public

buildings, in private houses

and on

particularly oaks.

This last

mode

of exposure, to
is

which
first

both Virgil and Statins allude, ^


in point of time.
first

obviously the

Nor had

its
;

memor}^ passed away

in the
^

century of the Empire

witness the famous passage

where Lucan compares Pompey to an old and

leafless

oak, long dead, which, standing in the midst of a fruitful


field

and charged with ancient


Cf. Cic.

spoils,

still

remains an
Plut. Alcib. 29.
;

'

De

Invent,

ii.

23, 69

Diod.

Sic. xiii.

24
in

The use of metal trophies was general Macedonians never raised trophies of any
'

later

on

Greece

but the

sort (Pans. ix. 40, 9).

Florus,
Virg.

iii.

2.

A en.

xi. 5 sqq.
i.

Stat. Theb.
sqq.

ii.

707

sqq.

Lucan,

Phcii's.

136

TARPEIA
object of adoration.

45

Now,

if

a tree like this

age was to be counted by centuries

whose could stand the


in
its

very heart of the countryside, braving the casual cupidity


of every passer-by,

and yet retain

burden
:

inviolate,

there

is

only one conclusion to be drawn


all

the spoils were

protected from

contact by the sanctity attached to


if

them.

Conversely,

these were left to

hang on the

withered boughs of a tottering oak, and not a


of transferring

man dreamt

them

to a sounder stem,

it

can only have

been because the support of the spoils was as sacred as


the spoils themselves.

Only the natural chances

of time

and

tide could reduce

them

to dust

the hand of

man

must on no account

interfere in the process.


in the strict sense of the

Equally intangible,

word,

were the private trophies

in the

home

of a successful

commander.
secure from

Generation

after

generation

injury -patents

they hung
the house,

of nobility to

and sources

of prestige to its owner. ^

So, after the dis-

aster at Cannae,

when Fabius wished

to

fill

up the gaps

hewn
of

in the senatorial ranks,

he chose a certain number

burgesses whose family residences were

with spoil stripped from the enemy.rostrata dormis

ornamented Pompey's house


Cilician

In

was

still

gay with the prows of


emperor
tells us,

ships

when
fire

it

passed to Mark Antony, and

later,

by

inheritance, to a forbear of the

Gordian.'^

the great

under Nero, Suetonius


generals perished
'

the mansions

of old-world
'
'

still

ornamented with
(vi.

They arrange

their trophies,' says Polybius

39),

'

in

the

most conspicuous positions


evidence of their
it

available, as they consider

them palpable
i,

own

prowess.'

Similarly,

TibuUus

(i.
'

54)

admits
ii.

may well become Messala to war by sea and land, may flaunt it in hostile spoils.' Compare also Li v. x.
28
;

that his house


7
;

Cic. Phil.

Sil.
"
^

It.

Pun.

vi.
: '

Liv. xxiii. 23

436, &c. qiai spolia ex hoste fixa


;

domi haberent.'
28, 68.

Capitolinus, Gordian, 3

cf.

Cic. Phil.

ii.

46

CULTS, MYTHS,
spoils.'
^

AND RELIGIONS

Even when a house passed by sale to another family, the new owner might not touch the spolia, still less remove them.- There is a shade of
the enemies'
guilelessness in the notion that this prohibition of touching,

tending
lest

or

repairing the spolia

was dictated by armour or family

fear
spoil

the unscrupulous
their houses

should display apocryphal


as

in

much

old

The scruple, proof of which we have already adduced, was purely religious, and the Romans continued to act in conformity with it long after they had lost all real comprehension
portraits are

bought at a price

to-day.-^

of its character.

In

the

temples

the

habitation

of

the

gods

the

trophies were nailed on the walls

and could never be

removed.

Only

in

circumstances of the utmost gravity,

when
it

the salvation of the state hung by a thread, was

permissible to equip recruits with the arms of a van-

quished enemy.

After Cannae, at a

moment when Rome


according to
'

appeared defenceless, the consuls,

Livy,

had weapons made


little later

in hot haste,

and

the spoils of ancient


portico.'
^

foemen were torn down from temple and


special edict to
this

A
by

the dictator M. Junius Pera was authorised

to religious law,

mount on horseback, was contrary and proceeded to accoutre six thousand


Livy well knew that such a measure was

men

in the

Gaulish arms which had decked the triumph

of Flaminius.'^

every whit as exceptional as the other which was passed


at the

same time and opened the ranks of the Roman army to slaves. They were, he says, the last resources
'
'

Suet. Nero, 38
Pliny, XXXV.
'

'

hostilil^us

adhuc

spoliis ornatae.'

7.

The

pretenders.'
*

object being doubtless to guard against the frauds of false Smith, Diet, of Ant., s.v. Spolia,' p. 691.
'

Liv. xxii. 57.

"

Ibid, xxiii. 14.

TARPEIA
of

47

an almost desperate

state, driven to
^

make convention
in

give

way

to necessity.'

The use
it

of

arms taken

war

was so abnormal a course that


hesitancy, even
if

was only adopted with


Livy

the spoils were not the fruits of victory,


of Syracuse,
relates,

but a
*

gift.

During the revolt

armed citizens mustered in the public squares, while the unarmed flocked to the shrine of Olympian Jove in search of the Gallic and lUyrian spoils which Rome had bequeathed to Hiero. Let Heaven be gracious, they every blow prayed, and lend them these sacred arms
the
;

they struck should be for fatherland, for freedom, and


for the temples of their gods.'
~

The arms were indeed


that they

sacred, but not more so than those in the porticoes and

private houses of

Rome.

The point was, not

belonged to a temple, but that they were arms taken in

war

exuviae.

By

the very fact of their capture they


use,

were withdrawn from


at least

and became

theoretically,

untouchable

just as

we have

seen to be the case

when they simply hung on tree-branches or house-walls. The religious character of the temples where they were lodged added nothing to the sanctity inherent in them
;

the most

it

could do was to guarantee that sanctity by

rendering

it

apparent to

all

eyes.

Ill

This

example,
of

after

so

many

others,

shows the

perversity

certain

historians,

still

inspired

prejudices of the eighteenth century,


utility

who

by the seek in pubhc

or

what we are now pleased to consider such


'

'Honesta utilibus cedunt Fabius in the Punka of Silius,


1

(Liv. xxiii. 14, 3).


x.

Cf. the

speech of

598

517^.

Livy, xxxiv. 21.

48

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
Two
is

the origin of primeval law and custom.


stricken tribes go to

poverty-

war

an engagement

fought,

and

the victors collect the

arms and clothing

of the vanquished.

Common sense,
initial

a bad guide for once, would say they were

making hay while the sun shone, in order to follow up an


success with fresh resources.
tribe does nothing of

Unfortunately, the

winning

the sort, unless driven

by an

absolute necessity which silences the scruples of

religion.

The

spoils are sacred,

and must be

called in

from circulation because they have become dangerous to


touch.

Sometimes, as we have seen, they


:

may

be hung

out of reach in a building


for

sometimes, and this earlier

man makes war long before temples, porticoes, and houses they may be thrown into water, or destroyed by Finally, if the tribe is sedentary, they may be fire.
upon a consecrated part prohibition attached that none
piled
of its territory, with the
shall lay a

hand on them.
in

In short, the rites prescribed for the treatment of spoils

correspond to the various funerary

rites

suspension
is

mid-air until the slow process of natural decay


plete, immersion, cremation, burial.
air,

com-

The

four elements,

water,

fire,

and

earth,
of
this

combine to rescue
world

man from
he
is

the

dangers

not

with
we
of

which

threatened by the sacred objects.

In the course of time,


it is

thanks to the priesthood whose business


or neutralise the powers of magic,

to conciliate

find the

work

of

destruction arrested.

Man no

longer sequestrates the


life,

whole of

his capture

from the usages

he surrenders

a fraction to the gods


allow
of

in other words, to the priests

who

him

to dispose of the remainder at will.


spoils has

The bulk
yet on the

what were

become

booty.

And

ever valid principle of the survival of rehgious scruples,

the spoils taken from an

enemy have never

entirely lost

TARPEIA
the sacred character with
.

49

which they were originally

invested
to

there has always been a shade of reluctance

treat

them

as

everyday objects available


first-fruits

for

any

purpose.

At a period when

and

tithes of the

booty were no longer offered to heaven, Napoleon had

by the Grande Armee cast into a triumphal column, instead of adding them to his batteries or keeping them in his arsenals to fight another day.
the cannon captured

IV

We
of their

have spoken
immersion

of the destruction of spoils

by

fire,
;

in water, of their

exposure on land

we have now
rites.

to collect a

few examples of these primitive

Orosius, probably on the authority of Livy.i states

that the Cimbrians and Teutons, after routing the consul

Manilius and the proconsul Caepio, destroyed the whole


of the

immense booty which they


Articles
of clothing
;

seized in the

two

Roman

camps.

were torn to shreds and


the equipment of

scattered to the winds

gold and silver were flung into


;

the river, horses into an abyss

men and

chargers was broken up piecemeal.


these barbarians
it

In the conduct of

'

extravagant

'

he naturally considers
of execration.'
2

Orosius sees

'

new and unusual mode

To the Danish

scholars of the nineteenth century,

Worsaae
only the

in particular, belongs the credit of

proving that here we

have nothing either


peoples of the North.

'

new

'

or

'

unusual

'

simple performance of a

rite familiar to

the barbarian

In 1866 Worsaae thus explained

the numerous finds of bronze weapons and ornaments


'

Orosius, V. 16.
'.
. .

nova quadam atque

insolita execratione.'

50
in

CULTS, MYTHS,
the
;

AND RELIGIONS

turf-pits

of

Denmark, which actually are old


deposits

lakes

a year later he extended his theory to the Bronze


'

Age.i

In

all

the the

from our
of

turf-pits,'

said

Engelhardt
'

at

Congress

Copenhagen
is

(1869),-

there

is

hardly a single object but


. . .

imperfect,
is,

and
these

unfitted for subsequent use.

The

fact

all

deposits

come from booty


articles

collected on the field of battle

and the

have been deliberately incapacitated

during the process of offering them to the gods, to

whom
:

a sacrifice of this nature had been promised beforehand


the warriors kept nothing but the glory.
cited

The passages by Worsaae and Beauvois from a number of classical

authors, together with Steenstrup's profound study of

the animal bones found in the same strata as the antiquities,

this point,

and mixed with them, have thoroughly cleared up which but lately seemed inexplicable.'
in

Worsaae 's theory was popularised


andre Bertrand, who wrote an
the
of
article

France by Alex-

on the subject, under

La Part des Worsaae which it


title
'

dieux.'

His monograph, like those


is

recapitulates,

marred by several
though
it

anachronisms

indeed,
one.

the

title

felicitous

may seem
of the

is itself

In the days

when Rome had

evolved her polytheistic system, and religious customs

kind we are dealing with had already a grey

antiquity behind

them,

the

classical

writers

believed

that the spoils destroyed or abandoned were


certain
divinities

vowed
in
'

to

or

reduced to nothingness

their

honour.

Livy has several references


Mem.
de la Soc. des antiquaires

to spoils burnt

to

Worsaae,

du Nord, 1S66,
8.

p.

61

cf.

O. Tischler, Geddchtnissrede an Worsaae, 1886, p.


-

p.

Congres d'archeol. prehistorique (Copenhagen), 1869, p. 200. See Bertrand, Archeol. celtique et gauloise, ed. 2, 5, 1872. 221. Cf. S. Miiller, Mem. de la Soc. des antiquaires du Nord, 1884'

August

1SS9, p. 225.

TARPEIA
Vulcan
gods to
'

51

spolia Vulcano cronantur.^

Elsewhere we find
'

spoils vowed to Jupiter, Mars,

Lua Mater,

and the other

whom

religion permits the consecration


-

by

fire

of hostile spoils.'
rest of the

It

was

to Mars, Minerva,

Lua, and the

gods that Aemilius Paulus solemnly addressed

himself, when, after having the shields of brass trans-

ported on his galleys, he heaped together the other arms


of every description, lired the pile with his

own hands,

and invited the military tribunes

to

throw lighted torches

upon

it.

In conforming to this archaic ritual, Paulus


to believe

believed

or feigned

that he was burning the


;

Macedonian arms
constitution of the

in

honour

of the gods

in realit}^

he

was following a venerable custom

of earlier date

than the

Roman

Pantheon.

Of

all

the divinities

whom

Livy names

in similar circumstances,

one only had


:

not been hellenised in the time of Aemilius Paulus

this

was Lua, whose name


and simph'
nothing
destruction.
else.

is

related to lues,

and means purely


is

To vow
is all

to
'

Lua

to destroy,

and
'

To recognise the

portion of the gods

in sacrifices of this type

the less legitimate because

the accredited representatives of the gods, the priests,


received nothing.
If

every offering to Vulcan had been

necessarily burnt, his temple

would never have contained


of the gods

anything but ashes.

The portion

was not the


;

part destroyed, but, on the contrary, the part preserved

and the

victor could only

have made

his offering in the


it

relatively late era

when
it.

there were temples to hold

and priests

to receive

True, Livy relates that Romulus,

after the defeat of x\cron,


*

whom
46
;

he killed and stripped of


;

Liv.

i.

37

viii.
ii.

10

xxiii.

xxx. 6

xli.

cf.

Preller-Jordan,

Rom. Mythalogie,
'
'

p. 162.
.

Liv. x. 29, lovi victori spolia cum vovisset cremavit ibid. Marti, Minervae, Luaeque Matri et ceteris deis quibus spolia hostium dicare fas est succensi.'
.
. ' :

xlv. 33,

'


CULTS, MYTHS,

52

AND RELIGIONS
temple

his arms, consecrated the spoil of that chief in the

of Jupiter Feretrius, so called

from the

litter or

feretrum

used for the transport. i

But, as a matter of fact, this

temple, which Livy considers the oldest in

Rome, does not

appear in history
it

till

328, when, four full centuries later,

received the spolia opima of the Veian king Volumnius


still

a trophy
primitive

visible
rite,
"'

in

the

time of Augustus. 2

The
burn
of

Roman

as Virgil knew,

was

either to

the enemy's spoils

or to

hang them on the trunk


:

an

oak

tree raised

upon a

hillock

thus Aeneas

'

reared

on a mound a giant oak, shorn

of its encircling boughs,

and clothed
I

it

in shining arms,'

am

not aware of any text which indicates that the


like the

Romans,
yet
I

Teutons and Cimbrians, were

in the

habit of throwing their spoils into lakes and


believe they

marshes,

must have done

so

for not only did

the Italian lakes receive a quantity of offerings in the

shape of

stipites,

but, at the rebuilding of the Capitol

by
old

Vespasian, the haruspices,

who were steeped


ruins

in ancient

custom,

ordered

the

flame-scorched

of

the

temple to be flung into the marshes


use."
^

to preclude their after

I.ivy,

i-

10,

5.

which connects Feretrius with


-

The etymology, of course, is absurd ferire is more reasonable (Prop.

the one
v. 10, 46).

Cj. the art. 'Jupiter' in Roscher's Lexikon, pp. 671, 674. Cf.

Hermes,

vol. xiii. p. 142.

^
^ i.

Virg. Aen. xi. 193.

Lucan's oak, sublimis in agro,


'

is

'

sublime

'

for this reason [Phars.

136).
'"

Ingentem quercum decisis undique ramis constituit tumulo fulgentiaque induit arma' {Aen.

xi. 5).
'

'"'

'

Ut

reliquiae prioris delubri in paludes aveherentur

(Tac.

Hisl.

iv. 53)-

TARPEIA

53

Romans may well have vowed the spoils of the enemy to a particular deity beforehand, as did Fabius at the moment of his attack on the Samnites.i But when, by way of fulfilling their
In the historical period, the

engagement, they destroyed the booty instead of preserving


it,

they were obeying a custom whose primitive

character had been obscured

by

time.

When,
for

again, they

saw the barbarians doing

likewise,

they imagined them


;

to be offering sacrifices to their gods

they had

lost

the conception of a primitive state in which a sacrifice was

something the poles removed from an offering to a given


divinity.

Yet, in one passage at least, Livy seems to


a doubt.

have

felt

In 176 B.C. the Ligurians took Mutina,


of booty,

seized an
'

enormous amount

and destroyed

it.

They

killed the prisoners after

hacking them to pieces,

turned the temples into shambles rather than places of


sacrifice,"

and

finally, after

a carnage of

all living

things,

vented their fury upon inanimate objects.


every kind were dashed against the walls

Vases of

especially
^

any that seemed made

for use rather

than ornament.'
as

Thus

the

Ligurians

behaved

precisely

did

the

Cimbrians

and

Teutons

seventy

years

afterwards,

butchering and battering everything with such a rage of


destruction that Livy hesitates to term this massacre a
sacrifice

trucidant veriiis

quam

sacrificant.

And, indeed,

Livy,
' . . .

X. 29,

14-18.
. . .

pecora in fanis foeda laceratione interficiunt trucidant verius passim quam interficiunt.' Livy, xli. 18: Satiati caede animantium, quae inanima erant parietibus adfligunt, vasa omnis generis usui magis quam ornamento in speciem facta. ..." (An allusion to the destruction of the precious vases of Corinth by Mummius ?)
'

cum

'

54
to
call
is

CULTS, MYTHS,
it

AND RELIGIONS
of

sacrifice

would be an abuse
of a gift-sacrifice,
;

words

there

no question here

none

of a

sacrifice of expiation or

communion

it

is

simply and

solely

the execution of a sort of outlawry, herem, to

use the expression of the Bible, which furnishes us with


equivalent examples.

Before passing to
ceedingly instructive,
I

those

examples,

which are exon the


rite

must touch
is

briefly

whose
left

distinctive feature

that the hostile spoils are


I

heaped on the ground without being burnt.


its

have

found no text attesting

practice in Italy
it

but a very

important passage in Caesar attributes

to the Gauls,

whose

civilisation

at

the time of

the conquest offers


'

Mars,' more than one analogy to that of primitive Italy. and as a general rule, he says,^ is their arbiter of war
'
;

if

they are resolved on battle, they promise him the


all

spoils.

After victory they sacrifice


their

animals that

fall

into

hands and deposit the remainder of their prizes in in many districts the some one determinate place
:

towering heaps of spoil on consecrated ground are very


noticeable.
It rarely

happens that a Gaul so


booty
pile
:

far defies

his religion as to conceal a part of the

in his

house

or to remove anj^thing from the general


for that offence
is

the penalty

death, preceded
it

Caesar rightly perceived that

by the crudest tortures.' was here a question of


the

a religious law or custom, sanctioned by the most terrible


penalties.

Other

texts

tell

us

Gauls

sometimes
it

burned the booty.lakes

On

occasion, also, they sank


for

in

or ponds

those,
the
vi.

instance,

around Toulouse,
Q. Servilius Caepio

where, in 105
*

B.C.,

Romans under

Caesar, Bell. Gall.

17.

This must undoubtedly be Florus' meaning, when he says the Boii vowed the Roman arms to Vulcan (i. 20, 5). Cf. Waltzing, Rev. des itudes anciennes, vol. iv. p. 53.
-

TARPEIA
reaped

55

an

ample harvest

of

gold

and

silver. '

The

commonly
Not

received opinion that these ponds served as

treasuries for the


less so is

Tectosages

is

obviously inadmissible.

the story that their riches were fruits of


;

the pillage of Delphi


in the

though there

is

one grain of truth

legend

the gold of Toulouse,

was the result of military expeditions,


submerged on account
the
gravest

aunim Tolosanum, and had been


I

of its sacred character.

have
or

already remarked that the sanctity of the spoils threatened

consequences

to

those

who touched

appropriated the objects thus withdrawn from circulation.

Hence, when Caepio and his army were annihilated in


105 B.C. by the Cimbrians, the disaster was ascribed to the sacrilegious theft of the Toulouse gold

-an

opinion

which must have originated


filtered

in

Gaul and afterwards have


it

through to

Italy,

where

was a commonplace that


kin.

the treasure had been

fatal,

not only to the actual depre-

dators, but even to their kith

and

These are the

normal effects of a violated taboo.


M. d'Arbois de Jubainville has recently commented

on the following well-known excerpt from Diodorus,


relative to the Celts
foes,
:

'

Taking the heads of


to
their horses'

their fallen

and

fastening

them

necks,

they

leave to their servants the bloody spoils of the slain, and


for their sole

booty carry
of

off

the scalps amid songs of

triumph and hymns


observes
that
there

victory.'

M. d'Arbois justly

must have been many Germans


;

amongst these servants


explanation
'

and here we have a

feasible
*bheiidt,

how
13
;

the Celtic word for victor}^,


Justin, xxxii. 3, g.

Strabo,

iv. i,

At a
Died.

later period the


Cf.

Gauls, like the

Romans, preserved

their

booty
^

in temples.
Sic. V.

Revue des itiidcs anciennes, vol. iv. pp. 280 sq. Cf. d'Arbois, Comptes rendus de I' Acad, des 24, 4.

Inscr.

1907, p. 172.

56

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

became the German word Bcutc

booty.
;

Diodorus omits

to specify the Celtic tribe he alludes to

and the habit he


it

describes cannot have been general, as


direct evidence of Caesar.

contradicts the

However,

it

may

be retained

as an example, local perhaps, of a religious reminiscence

vivid enough to deter the Gauls from carrying off the


spoils of war.

To say they were content with


is

the mere

glory of conquest, and nursed a chivalrous disdain for the

material fruits of victory,


of exclusively

to be misled
;

by the

influence

modern

ideas

a lapse which was

made by
who

Engelhardt, who, in the passage quoted above, attributes

a like disinterestedness to the Scandinavian warriors

threw their booty into the


of superstition, not

lakes.

These are the domains

of ethics.

Only when superstition


of
it.

relaxed her grip, and the desire for material emoluments

and tangible gains took the upper hand, did the dread
touching the booty give

way

to the lust of possessing

This was the attitude of the Germans in Augustan days,

when they slaughtered the

officers of

Varus' army, but

did not hesitate to enrich themselves with the spoils.^


Tacitus, relating the avenging campaign of Germanicus,

more than once remarks upon the avidity shown by the


soldiers of

Arminius 'who preferred robbery to blood.'

And

yet these

their ancestors'

Germans had preserved the memory of habit of consecrating spoils by suspension,

a method similar to the one long practised at

Rome

for

the ensigns of Varus' legions were fixed by Arminius to


old oaks in the Teutoburger Wald.'^
'

Tacitus,
Ibid.

^ WW.

i.

37

'

Ferebantiir etspolia Varianaecladis, plerisque

praedae data.'
i.

^ ^

65: 'Hostium aviditas, omissacaede, praedam sectantium.'


59.

Ibid.

i.

TARPEIA
VI

57

In order to confirm and clarify what has been said up


to

now with

regard to the sacred character of spoils taken


religious objection of semi-barbarous

in warfare,

and the
to scour

peoples to their appropriation and subsequent use, there


is

no need
is

North America

for

examples

the

Bible

sufficient.

The theory
the spoil of the

of the interdict {herein),

which condemns
few reservain

enemy

to destruction, with a
is
:

tions dictated b}^ practical necessity,

found

two

passages of Deuteronomy and


'

Numbers

When

the Lord thy

God

shall bring thee into the land


;

it ... and when the them before Lord thy God thee thou shalt thou shalt make smite them, and utterly destroy them no covenant with them, nor shew mercy unto them:

whither thou goest to possess


shall deliver

neither

shalt

thou make marriages with

them
turn

thy

daughter thou shalt not give unto his son, nor his daughter
shalt thou take unto thy son.

For they

will

away

thy son from following me.'


'

Only the

gold,

and the

silver,

the brass, the iron, the

tin,

and the

lead, everything that

may
and

abide the
it

fire,

ye
:

shall

make
and

it

go through the
shall

fire,

shall

be clean

nevertheless
tion
:

it

be purified with the water of separafire

all

that abideth not the


-

ye shall

make go

through the water.'

And now
all

for the practice,

which naturally precedes

theory.

We
'

find

it

in

the

book

of

Joshua.-'

The
I

Hebrews had arrived before


gates shut.
'

Jericho,

only to find the

And

the Lord said unto Joshua, See,


1-4.
^
-

Deuteronomy

vii.

Numbers

xxxi. 22, 23.

Joshua

vi.

2 sqq.

58

CULTS. MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
thereof,

have given into thine hand Jericho, and the king

and the mighty men


the city
once.
shall
all

of valour.

And ye And

shall

compass
city

ye

men

of war,

and go round about the

Thus shalt thou do six days.


shall

seven priests
:

bear before the ark seven trumpets of rams' horns

and the seventh day ye


times,
it

compass the city seven

and the

priests shall

blow with the trumpets.

And

shall

come
all

to pass, that

when they make

a long blast

with the ram's horn and when ye hear the sound of the
trumpet,
the people shall shout with a great shout
of the city shall fall
;

and the wall


round the
suppressed
circuit
'

down
'

fiat.'

Joshua
circle

hearkened to the word of the Lord, traced a tnagic


tow^n,
it.

and

'

cut

it

off

that

is,

virtually

On

the seventh day,

when

the seventh

had been made, and the

priests lifted their trumpets,


;

Joshua said unto the people. Shout

for the

Lord hath

given you the city.


it,

And

the city shall be accursed, even


:

and

all

that are therein, to the Lord

only

Rahab

the

harlot shall live, she

and

all

that are with her in the

house,

because she hid the messengers that we sent.

And

ye, in

any wise keep yourselves from the accursed

thing lest ye

make
But

yourself accursed,

when ye take

of the

accursed thing, and


trouble
it.

make

the

camp

of Israel a curse,

and

all

the silver and gold, and vessels of


:

brass and iron, are consecrated unto the Lord

they shall

come unto the treasury of the Lord.' The walls fell, Jericho was taken, and the Hebrews applied the interdict, killing both man and woman, young and old, and ox,
'

and sheep, and

ass,

with the edge of the sword.'


all it

The}^

burnt the town and

contained except

'

the silver,
'

and the

gold,

and the

vessels of brass

and

of iron

which

they put into the treasury of the house of the Lord.

And

Joshua adjured them

in this

manner

'

Cursed be the

TARPETA
man
before the Lord, that riscth
:

59

up and buildeth the

city Jericho
first-born,

he shaU lay the foundation thereof in his


in his

and

youngest son shall be set up the

gates of

it.'

The
borne

curse put in Joshua's


:

mouth appears

to

have

fruit

for centuries

none dare

to rebuild Jericho.

The extensive excavations, recently carried out on the site by MM. Sellin and Niemann, have brought to light
the remains of the walls and of two
great
forts,

along with a

number
;

of

broken

articles, especially

fragments of

vases

almost

all

of which, so the explorers maintain,

go back to the Canaanitish period before the

Hebrew

supremacy.
described,

Once
Jericho

'

cut

off

'

ceased

to

by the magic operations exist. The savage


all

destruction of the

town and
strangely

its

contents,
of

animate
Livy's

and

inanimate,

is

reminiscent

account of the Ligurian frenzy at Mutina, and of the


passage in which
Orosius
deals

with

the Cimbrians
it

but
light

the sequel

is

yet more instructive, for

throws
stricken

on the contagion

immanent
the

in

objects
of

by the herem.
its

Even though

book

Joshua, in
the
Exile,

present form,

may

not be earlier than


of

the primitive stamp


is

thought

everywhere apparent
of

enough to show that the bed-rock


'

the narrative

The first book of Kings (xvi. 34) relates that, in the time of Ahab, Hiel the Bethelite rebuilt Jericho, but at the price of the lives of his he laid the foundation thereof on Abiram his firstborn, and two sons set up the gates thereof in his youngest son Segub, according to the word of the Lord, which he spake by Joshua the son of Nun.' This
' :

might seem the echo


blot out the herem
;

of a foundation-sacrifice, designed to

buy

off or

but the text, such as


'

it is,

hints rather at an

p. 485).

life of Kiel's two sons (Reuss, La Bible, vol. i. Reuss remarks on the point Jericho had long been rebuilt, and is mentioned as an existing and inhabited town in the story of David.' This inference is in no way to be drawn from the text cited (2 Samuel x. 5).

accident which cost the

6o
belongs

CULTS, MYTHS,
to

AND RELIGIONS
past,

the

remote

when

still

rudi-

mentary
scruples.i

civilisation

was wholly dominated by

religious

VII
In spite of the interdict a Hebrew by the name of Achan appropriated some of the objects that came from The sanction of the violated taboo soon made Jericho.
itself felt
:

three thousand soldiers were put to flight

by

the inhabitants of Ai.

Joshua bowed himself before the

Then the Lord said to Israel hath sinned, and they have also transJoshua gressed my covenant which I commanded them for
to the Lord.
'
: :

Ark and prayed

they have even taken of the accursed thing, and have also
stolen,

and dissembled
their

also,

and they have put


Therefore,

it

even
of

among
their

own

stuff.

the

children

Israel could not stand before their enemies,

but turned

backs before their enemies,


:

because they were

accursed

neither will

be with you any more, except ye

destroy the accursed from

among

you.'

Thus the whole


;

people was contaminated by the crime of an individual

and

this crime

had

to be expiated, for

'

there

is

an accursed
follows
it is

thing in the midst of thee,

Israel.'

What
;

obscure, the text being doubtless corrupt


as though, to discover the culprit, the

but

seems

Lord had pre-

scribed a magic test


lots.

an

appeal to the ordeal of casting


his

The
:

lot

fell

upon Achan, who acknowledged

guilt

'

When I saw among the spoils


of the

a goodly Babylonish

Joshua makes Jahveh intervene historians spoke of the spoils as consecrated to the gods but the taboo of the spoils with all its consequences appears to have been much earlier than the constitution of Hebraic monotheism, as well as anterior to that of Roman polytheism. It belongs to the period of magic and djinn (polydemonism).
'

The redactor

book
'

of

in everything, just as the


;

Roman

'

TARPKIA
garment, and two hundred shekels of
of gold of fifty shekels weight, then
I

6i
silver,

and a wedge

coveted them, and

took them
midst of

and, behold, they are hid in the earth in the


tent,

my

and the

silver

under

it.'

Joshua sent

messengers to the tent of Achan, and the articles were


recovered.

Then, acting upon the express commands he seized Achan, together with the
silver,

of the Lord,

the garment, the wedge of gold, his sons and his daughters,
his

oxen and
;

his asses,

his sheep,
all

his tent

and
'

all

his

goods

and, followed

by

Israel,

he led them to the

valley of Achor.

And Joshua
?

said to
shall

him

Why

hast

thou troubled us
day.

The Lord

trouble thee this

And

all Israel
fire,

stoned him with stones, and burned

them with

after they

had stoned them with

stones.

And

they raised over him a heap of stones unto this day.

So the Lord turned from the fierceness of his anger.


Wherefore, the
of

name
this

of that place

was

called, the valley

Achor

{trouble),

unto this day.'


with the passage from Caesar,

Comparing
understand

we now
torture.

why

a Gaul

who

purloined anything from the

heap

of spoils

was put to a lingering death by


defile himself

Not only did he

by laying hands on the

sacred and interdicted objects, but he exposed the whole

community to the contagion of his own pollution. It was imperative, therefore, in the public interest, to strike
terror

into

potential

evil-doers
;

examples and threats


criminal with
"be

by the most drastic and the extermination of a


This
in the

every refinement of cruelty was held to

the surest deterrent to his would-be imitators.

idea, that the pollution

was contagious, crops up


his

story of the theft of the Toulouse treasure

by Caepio,
annihilated,

who was
and
his

killed

by the Cimbrians,

army

very daughters, according to Strabo, reduced

62

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
The moral and
intellectual

to the vilest prostitution.

outlook of the persons


of history,

who

circulated this edifying piece


B.C.,
is

sometime about the year lOO

little

different
dilates

from that

of the redactor of Joshua, of

who calmly

on the sufferings

Achan, the stoning and burning


cattle

of his sons

and daughters,

and sheep, and the


of uncleanness.

destruction even of his

lifeless

belongings, which might

possibly be infected with the


course, the whole narrative

germ

Of

may have

been fabricated to

account for the existence of a stone tumulus in a place


called AcJioy, for the belief

was general that a heap

of

stones invariably covered the

body
is

of a criminal

who had
for the

been stoned to death.


history of religion

But the important point

and morals

not that the events

should have occurred precisely as they are related in the


Bible,

but that

it

should have been thought possible and

probable for them to have so occurred.

few years ago, M, I'abbe Paul Renard, Doctor of

Theology,

and professor
de
'

of

Holy Writ

in

the Grand the

Seminaire
episode
:

Chartres,

thus

summarised

Achan
town
This

His crime was the violation of the order

of Joshua,

who had
it

expressly anathematised the

with

all

that

contained
first

both

men and
in

booty.

annihilation of the

town conquered

Canaan was

a sort of religious consecration carried out, partly in

acknowledgment

of the sovereign rights of

Jehovah, and

partly to inspire a wholesome fear in the rest.

Hence

disobedience to the order became an act of sacrilege

deserving the vengeance of God.'

This method of satisfying the requirements of modern


ethics

by an emasculation and
;

distortion of the facts

is

vexatious anachronism
'

nor

is

the indignation expressed


la Bible, s.v.
'

Vigouroux, Dictionnalre de

Akhan.'

TARPEIA
by the philosophers
of the eighteenth century,

63

on the

perusal of these barbarous narratives, less contrary to

the exigencies of the critical


of
their
social

spirit.

At a certain moment
the Ligurians,
other nations as well,

evolution,

the Hebrews,
all

the Cimbrians, and, no doubt,

have thought the same and acted the same.


though they

Their deeds,

may

fill

us with horror, were only the logical


;

outcome

of their ideas

and

if

we

feel

some pride

in

measuring the road travelled since then, we ought to


reserve our censuie for those

who would even now propose

the conduct of prehistoric savages as a guide for our


consciences and morals.

There are other examples


interdict in the Bible,
Saul, despite the

of the laying

down

of

an

and

also

of its violation.

Thus
infant

word
kill

of the Lord,
'

who bade him smite


ass,'

the Amalekites and

both

man and woman,

and suckling, ox and sheep, camel and


short
after

stopped

butchering the

Amalekites, and kept the


his
dis-

pick of their cattle.

The Almighty rebuked


interesting
1
'

obedience by the mouth of Samuel, and punished him for


it.

Saul's defence

is

have utterly
spoil,

destroyed the Amalekites.

But the people took the


to sacrifice unto the

sheep and oxen, the chief of the things which should

have been utterly destroyed,


thy God in
Gilgal.'

Lord
it

As the excuse was not admitted,


with a
sacrifice.

follows that the enforcement of the interdict has nothing

whatever

in

common

Only things clean


is

can be offered up to God, and the interdict


foremost an interdict of
objects preserved

first

and
and

the unclean

even the metal

must undergo a
its

purification

by

fire

water before taking their place


the Almighty.

in the treasure-house of

Here, in
'

simple and primitive form,


3
;

Samuel xv.

ii.

23.

64

CULTS, MYTHS.
the rite of
'

AND RELIGIONS
and

we have
half

outlawry,' that ban on persons

things in time of war, which

we meet
the

anaemic now, and


the
classic

anthropomorphised

in

pages of

historians.

When

these

tell

us that a general, before

the battle,

vowed the

fruits of his

approaching victory

to this or that divinity, the Biblical herem allows us to

penetrate the underlying principle of the act

it

was

not a case of oblation or

sacrifice,

but of extermination.

VIII

Now
and
its

we have established the nature of the herein equivalents among other nations of antiquity,
that
to the second part of our inquiry.

we come

What was

the origin of a custom, so directly opposed to the material

and immediate
tribes

interests of the poor but passively obedient

which
:

it

forbade to act on the sensible,


is

if

secular,

axiom

What
is

good

to

take is good to keep

There

a so-called orthodox explanation of this asfacts,

semblage of

much favoured by the ordinary commen'

tator of the Bible.


Lesetre,
idolatry,
'

In certain

cases,'

wiites M. I'abbe

in order to inspire the Israelites

with a horror of

God commanded
fire,

that

all

booty taken from the

idolaters should be destroyed, with the exception of

what
. . .

could be purified by

metal objects

for instance.

These precautions had

for

aim both the physical hygiene


Hebrews.'
i

and the moral purity


that the use of
fire

of the

The notion
inspired

and water
physical

for the religious purifica-

tion of metal articles from a looted

town was
'

by
be
to

a solicitude

for

'

hygiene

may

possibly

ingenious, but certainly does not merit discussion.

As

the

'

moral hygiene
1

'

of the Israelites,

it is

open to question
'

Vigouroux, Dictionnaire de

la Bible,

art.

Butin.'

TARPEIA
whether the massacre of children at the breast and
Moreover, in such cases

65

women
it.

with child was peculiarly well calculated to promote


it

is

neither scientific nor even

commonly honest

to neglect the parallels furnished

by
is

the history of pagan nations.

As the

Biblical herem.

only a particular instance of a custom, once very widely

spread

if

not universal, no

historian

though

he be an

orthodox theologian

has

any

right to allege the

good

intentions of the Almighty

and the precautions

of Divine

Wisdom against the contagion of idolatry. A German scholar, Herr Schwally, who has
interdict

recently
'

studied the holy wars of ancient Israel, ^ thinks that

the
in-

imposed on booty was only an obstacle to


;

dividual greed
of the loot.'

the consecration preserved the integrity


refers, in this

He

connection, to the Polyne-

sian use of the taboo for protecting the fruits before the

harvest, and the products of the tribal fishing

and hunting
is

before their division. -

In a word, the interdict


fill

manuat

factured

superstition invented to

the place of police

regulations

which were then impracticable.

Here,

the beginning of the twentieth century,


thesis

we have an hypothey always

which would not have been disavowed by the

Encyclopaedists of the eighteenth

ready as

were to explain the apparently most fantastic customs


as the deliberate inventions of religious legislators,

whom

they

classified as

benevolent impostors from the same

mint as Voltaire's Mohammed.


remarks on

M. Fauconnet justly
of the herem,
I.

this

view

'
:

The theory
Cf.

proposed
Krieg

F.
alten

Schwally, Semitische Knegsaltcrthiimev,


Israel,

Der

heilige

im
'

Leipzig,

1901.

Fauconnet, Annee

sociologiqtte,

602 sq. The analogy between the herem Fauconnet, loc. laud. p. 605. and the taboo had been already recognised by Rob. Smith {Religion Ein solcher Bann ist ein Tabu, das durch die der Ssmiten, p. iiS) Furcht vor iibernatiirlichen Strafen veranlasst ist.'
vol. V. pp.
'
:

66

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

by M. Schwally, must apparently be consigned to the same category as those other theories which would explain the rules of exogamy by the drawbacks attend.
.
.

ant on consanguineous marriages.'

And,
less.

in

fact,
I

the

anachronism and absurdity are not

But

fancy

M. Fauconnet's resignation
says
'

is

little

premature, when he

the causes which determined the consecration and

To me With primitive mankind, war is an essentially religious phenomenon. Peace itself, not only between clansman and clansman but between clan and clan or tribe and neighbouring tribe, is based exclusively on religious ideas and religious ties.
destruction of the booty remain to be discovered.'

they seem easy enough to fathom.

To break

those ties which protect


in violating, to the

man

against

man to

be authorised

detriment of a given
blood
of

community, the sacred scruple


have another
religious

of

human

you must
power.

phenomenon
is is his.

equal

And
the

the manifestation of this


all

the solemn outlawry of

enemy and

that

In the case of Jericho

we
cut
of

have seen that the Ark


off

of the

Covenant was carried seven


'

times round the walls, tracing a magic circle which


'

the enemy's town, and suppressed

it

ideally,

course

before

a single act of overt hostility had been


operative,

committed.
dropped,
destroy

The magic proved

the

walls

and it only remained for the Israelites to by fire and sword what they had already virtually annihilated. There was no question, I repeat, of a sacrifice for only things clean can be offered to the gods, and a formal purification was necessary before the gold and
silver of Jericho could

be placed

in the divine treasury.


is

On

the contrary, everything on which an interdict

laid

becomes impure

with

an impurity that

is

dangerous,

not only to the individual, but

witness

the story of

TARPEIA
Achan

67

to

the whole group of which he forms a part.

From

this point of view, destruction

and extermination

are not acts of anger

and vengeance, but precautionary


burnt and not a

measures, similar, in due proportion, to those taken in

our day, when an infected lazaretto


stick or a stone
left.

is

It is

obvious, of course, that, in

scenes of arson and massacre, ferocity


of

and the wickedness

man's heart are more


;

likely to

run

amok than

to ab-

dicate their claims

but, neither in the case of the Hebrews,

nor in that of the Ligurians and Cimbrians, can those


passions

explain

the systematic
objects.

destruction

of

cattle

and even inanimate

Ferocity was the hand that

struck, the brain which conceived


'

and ruled was


malorum
'
!

religion.

Tantum
:

rclligio

potuit suadere

To conclude
conqueror's
alike

the spoils of war were inoculated with

a magic power for evil

virus

communicated by the
' '

own wizardry. Logic and magical hygiene demanded their destruction but covetousness
;

sighed at the waste, and before long self-interest and the


practical needs of hfe
of

began to temper the iron rigours

the

excommunication.
hfe,

And,

first,

with regard to
;

human
girls,

only the adult males were slain

women,

and children were reduced and swelled the


lifeless objects,

to slavery, until in the

end the whole vanquished population shared the same


fate

riches of the victor.

As

for animals

and

recourse was

had
or

to

two expedients.

Either the clan, following a prescribed ritual, purified


all it

wished to keep and use

it

surrendered a part

in

return for the privilege of retaining the rest.

The

priesthood

omnipotent

in the sphere of

magic

deter-

mined

alike the proportion that should

be enfranchised

to the conqueror,

and the amount which must escheat

68

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

to the gods
priated.

and remain forever untouched and unapproall

Of

the objects which the victor renounced,

either to be destroyed
in a

by

fire

or water, or to be exposed

holy place beyond the reach of harm, none preserved

their inviolability so long as the exuviae

the

arms and

personal
factor

equipment

of

the vanquished.
;

But another
into

had

to be reckoned with

and, in the course of

time, national pride

and individual vanity converted

trophies of victory the weapons and harness, once gathered

together and laid

away through

fear of the supernatural

dangers which attached to them.

When we

look at the

trophies of Dacian arms sculptured on the base of Trajan's

column,

it is

not amiss to

recall that these

monuments

of

military glory are only the secular outcome, so to say,


of a long process of evolution

whose beginning was the

sequestration of arms taken from the


tration dictated
religious.

enemy

seques-

by

scruples eminently

and exclusively
enable

The
offer

foregoing developments
I

at

last

me

to

what

venture to think

is

a simple and convincing

explanation of one of the strangest legends in the primitive


history of

Rome

mean

the death of Tarpeia.

IX
Livy's story
is

common

knowledge. ^

The

Sabines,

under King Tatius, attacked the Capitol


fortress.

the

Roman

The governor's daughter Tarpeia, seduced by

the sight of the gold ornaments which they wore on the


left

arm, promised to betray the citadel in exchange.

However, the moment she gave them entry, they buried her under their shields, either (says Livy) to create an
'
'

'

Livy,

i.

II (after

Fabius Pictor and Cincius Alimentus).

TARPEIA
discourage treason

69

impression that they had taken the place by assault, or to

by a memorable example.' ^ Many variants of the tale have come down to us some transmitted directly, others mentioned, only to be discarded, by the historians in general and Dionysius and Plutarch in particular. Schwegler and, more recently,
;

Ettore Pais have taken great, perhaps too great, pains to


details. It will be enough for us by testimony of to the the texts themselves, every incident of the story was doubtful and fluctuating,

marshal and discuss the

show

that,

even

in antiquity,

with the exception of a single point, on


:

which our authorities speak with one voice

Tarpeia

had been crushed


enemy's arms.
I

to

death under the weight of the


in

have had occasion to point out

some

of

my

earlier articles that the

same phenomenon
is

recurs in several old legends

whose theme

the violent

death of a hero

the causes, remote or proximate, of the

catastrophe are lost in a tangle of conflicting traditions


or gross inconsistencies
;

agreement exists only as to the

actual circumstances of the death.

forced
like

The conclusion is upon us from the outset these stories and the have their origin in self-conscious combination, and
:

the parent stem of the various aetiologies


tangible reality for us

is

the one

a
:

cult or a ritual.

A
I.

glance at the variants of the Tarpeian legend shows

the following results

reign

The majority of writers place the heroine in the of Romulus but the Greek poet Simylus would
;

have

it

that she betrayed the Capitol to the Gauls under

Brennus.Obrutam armis necavere, seu ut vi capta potius arx videretur, seu prodendi exempli causa, ne quid unquam fidum proditori esset (Livy, i. II, 7). Analogous reflections in Plut. Rom. xvii. 7, and Prop. v. 4, 89.
'
'

'

Ap.

Plut.

Rom.

xvii.

70
2.

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

Most historians make her a Roman, but some say that she was a Sabine.
3.

According
;

to

some,

her

father,

Tarpeius,

was

absent

others describe

him

as a traitor put to death

by

Romulus.
4.

The custody
to

of the citadel belonged, according to


;

some,

Tarpeius

according

to

others,

to

Tarpeia

herself.^
5. 6.

Tarpeia was or was not a Vestal Virgin.^

According to some, she acted from cupidity

'->

according to others, to entrap the Sabines by exacting


the surrender of their shields she was in love with Tatius
; ;

according to Propertius,

according to Simylus, with


she

Brennus

according

to

Antigonus of Carystus,

wished to be avenged upon Romulus.^


7.

The Sabines

(or

the Gauls) killed her, either to

foster the belief that they

had penetrated
to

into the citadel

by
for

force, or

from disgust at her treason,^" or to punish her


them,
^1

deceiving

or
or

escape parting with

their

golden ornaments,
the secrets of
All are

because she refused to

reveal

Romulus to Tatius, 1unanimous on the one point that Tarpeia was

crushed under the arms and ornaments of the enemy.


'

Antigonus of Carystus made her the daughter of Tatius


xvii.).
;

(Plut.

Rom.
-

Opinion of Sulpicius Galba combated by Plut. Rom. xvii. Another opinion refuted by Plutarch [l.l.). She was a Vestal Virgin according to Varro (L. Lat. v. 41), Propertius (v. 4, 18), and tha chronographer of 354 [Chron. Min. i. p. 144, 8). Those who say that she met the Sabines while going out to draw water
^

seem to share the same opinion (Livy,


^ ^
''

i.

11

Val.

Max.

ix. 6, i, &c.).

9
1' '-

Livy, i. II. The version of L. Calpurnius Piso, adopted by Dionysius Plut. Rom. xviii. Prop. iv. 4, 39. ^" Livy, i. 11. Ibid.
**

(ii.

50).

The

version of Fabius (Dionysius,


i.

ii.

3S).

Chron. Min.

p. 144.

TARPEIA
Almost
all,

71
;

in this connection,

mention the great shields

some add the golden


Sabines or Gauls.

bracelets

and

rings

worn by the

There

is

one valuable piece of numismatic evidence.

In the last century of the Republic, two

Roman

families

claiming a Sabine descent placed the virgin Tarpeia upon


their coins.
Titurii,

On
is

the reverse side of those struck

by the

she

represented in the act of separating a


;

Roman and

a Sabine warrior

the inference being that

she was considered as one of those heroic dames

who threw
a young

themselves between the two armies in order to end the


struggle.
girl,

On

the coins of the Turpilii, she

is

seen from the front, with both arms raised and

only the upper part of her body emerging fom a heap of


shields.-

Thus the opinion, that Tarpeia was a Sabine and not Roman, had its adherents in the sixth century a.u.c. The explanation is possibly to be found in the incona
testable traces of a Sabine domination on the Capitol
^
;

where not only was the house

of Tatius

shown,

but

it

had been necessary

to exaiiguratc

and demolish several

Latin chapels of his foundation, at the time when the

temple of Jupiter was being built by Tarquin."'

But

it

was sheer guesswork that translated Tarpeia


or the daughter of Tatius himself
1 ;

into a Sabine

positive knowledge

According to Plutarch {Rom. xvii.) Tatius was the first to throw and bracelet on Tarpeia and the same version given by Piso is familiar to Dionysius (ii. 38). In a fragment of Appian {De Re. 4), quoted by Suidas and perhaps incomplete, she is buried (Ka.Tix<^<^Ori) under ornaments of gold. A similar account, from the suspect Aristides of Miletus, is preserved by Plutarch [Par all. xv.). - Babelon, Monnaies de la Rep. rom. ii. pp. 301, 498 Pais, Ancient Legends of Roman History, p. 97. ^ Liv. i. 32 Tac. Ann. xii. 24 Dionys. ii. 50. * Plut. Rom. 20 Solin. i. 21.
his shield

'"

Livy,

i.

55.

Cf. Schwegler,

Rom.

Gesch.

i.

p. 484.

72
of her

CULTS, MYTHS.
there was none,

AND RELIGIONS
facts
:

beyond these three

rock on the Capitol was called by her name, her tomb


or cenotaph

was

exhibited there, and yearly rites were

celebrated in her honour.

This follows unmistakably

from the passage

in

which Dionysius subscribes to the

by Calpurnius Piso, who held that Tarpeia had not betrayed the Romans, but attempted to deceive their enemies. The sequel of the
version given in the Gracchan period
'

incident,'

says Dionysius, ^
;

'

demonstrates the truth of

Piso's

view

for

a magnificent

tomb was
Hills, at

erected to

Tarpeia on the holiest of the Seven

the place

where she met her death

and every year and

to repeat Piso
in the act of

the
Now,
selling

Romans make
it

libations

offer sacrifices to her.

is

certain that,

had she perished

her country to the enemy, neither those

who

killed

her nor those

whom

she betrayed would have

shown her any such


this

respect, but rather

have flung her

carcass into the sewer.'

Plutarch seems to imply that

tomb was a cenotaph, or, strictly speaking, an altar more than a tomb. Tarpeia,' he says,- was buried in this very place and the hill took its name Tarpeian
' '

from

her, until

King Tarquin consecrated

it

to Jupiter

^
;

when her remains were transferred elsewhere, and her name disappeared [koI rovvo/xa r/}? TapTrrjia'i i^eXLire). One trace, however, was left and the rock on the Capitol, from which condemned criminals arc hurled to their death, is still known as the Tarpeian Rock.' Now, if Tarpeia's remains had really been transferred
;
'

" Phit. Rom. xvii. Dionysius, ii. 38. Mr. Pais thinks the name Tarpeia identical with Tarquin, and considers the Vestal Tarpeia and the Vestal Tarquinia, who gave the plain of the Tiber to the Romans, to be one and the same person [Legends of Roman History, p. 105). The theory seems
'

to

me

inadmissible.

TARPEIA
elsewhere,'

73

vestiges of her cult


in

would have been


is

dis;

covered somewhere

Rome.

But the case


is

not so

and the passage from Plutarch


lost text

probably the echo of a


results of a search

which stated the negative


maiden's bones.
Finally,

for

the

Festus

puts

it

on

record that current opinion recognised Tarpeia in an


old statue in the temple of Jupiter
built

by Metellus
to

[in

aede Jovis Metellina).^

Unfortunately, he enters into

no

detail,

and we can hardly suppose the image


on the Turpilian
coins.
;

have

been similar to that


This
take
it

latter, then, is

our only document

and we may

as the starting-point in our attempt to determine

what the ancients definitely knew or believed themselves to know upon the subject, and to unravel the

tangled skein of legends designed to account for one


feature or another in the tale.

X
Tarpeia was the local divinity of the Tarpeian Rock
;

and there she possessed an


annually celebrated.
this spot, crushed to

altar

where her
it

cult

was

Tradition had

that she died on

death by shields

Sabine

in

some

versions, Gaulish in others, but in either case

non-Roman.

The engraver of the coin represented her agony, while she was still writhing under the weight of the arms accumua moment later, and nothing would have lated upon her been visible but a heap of shields in the form of a mound. Now, this mound of shields, which quite possibly was interspersed with a few rings, bracelets, and armlets of and after what gold, is the root of the whole legend
; ;

has been said above,

it is

easy to account for


M.

its

existence.

'

Festus, p. 363,

74

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
still

At a period when temples were


escaped
destruction,

to seek at

Rome, and

huts served for houses, the spoils of war, so far as they

noticed by Caesar

must the Gaulish trophies have been piled on some plot conlike

of

secrated ground, where they were

immune from
its

touch.
;

In these heaps of arms the trophy had


Tacitus, speaking of that erected
still call it

origin

and

'

mound
and

of weapons.'

by Germanicus, could But with the advent


large

of

temples

comparatively
spoil

dwelling-houses

where the enemy's


rite

might be hung, the primitive


pile of shields

was forgotten, and the

on the Tarpeian
as well as certain to
lies

Hill

became an enigma.
belief

Now, with ancient


heap
a
of stones
is

modern man, the


engender the
buried beneath
crime.
lore
;

sight of a

that

an important personage
as

generally
is

punishment

for

some

could cite

many examples from


no dearth
of

latter-day folktexts.

but there

classical

An

epigram on the brigand Balista, attributed to


begins
:

Virgil,

'

Under

this hill of stones Balista

lies.'

Achilles caused Pisidice of

Methymna to be crushed under


heap
of stones

a heap of stones. ^
of the

In the days which saw the compilation

book
*

of Joshua, the

under which

Achan

slept

was

still

pointed out, as well as another that


Ai."'

covered the body of the King of

Possibly the fact

that stoning to death was the usual penalty for the most
serious

crimes
;

may have

favoured the birth of these


it

legends

but similar tales are found where

is

purely

a question of ordinary earthen tumuli which might be


^

Tac. Ann.
'

"

'Congeriemarmorum struxit superbo cum titulo.' ii. 22: Serv. ad Aen. Monte sub hoc lapidum tegitur Balista sepultus
' :

vol.
^

i.

p. I, ed. Thilo.

Parthenius, Erot. xxi.

8.

''

Joshua

vii. 26.

'"

Ibid. viii. 29.

TARPETA
of a cult, but are ahnost

75

natural phenomena, defensive fortifications, or the sites

always regarded as the tombs

of heroes or heroines, giants, fairies,

and so

forth.

Speci-

mens of this nomenclature, implying a whole met with in the Iliad.^


Popular imagination
errors.
is

legend, are

essentially logical, even in its


shields,

The

sight of a

heap of

forming a tumulus

on a place sacred to the


Tarpeia, was

cult of the

eponymous heroine
shields.
is

bound

to suggest the idea that this heroine

had been crushed


logical
its

to death
?

under the

such a punishment
;

Popular imagination

But why more than

it is

just,

and requires that every penalty shall have


In this case, the punishment
inflicted

corresponding crime.

must have been


employed were

by

foreign warriors, for the

arms

foreign.

But warriors spare unarmed


There remained the hypothesis

women
of

therefore Tarpeia could not have been killed

in defence of the Capitol.

treason

conjecture facilitated
traitors
(as

by the knowledge
fail

that

condemned

Plutarch does not

to

recall)
it

were hurled from the Tarpeian Rock.-

Why,
is

then,

may

be objected, does tradition not mete out the same


?

fate to the arch-traitress herself

The answer

that

the legend of her treason was not formed independently,

but was suggested, as we have seen, by the existence of


a heap of shields, under which Tarpeia, the local

nymph,

was buried.
If at

the time of the capture of

Rome by

the Gauls,

there existed a

mound

of Sabine shields

on some one point


in the

of the Capitol, those

arms must have disappeared


This explains, to

catastrophe of 390 and have been replaced, a

little later,

by Gaulish weapons.
'

my

mind, the

//.

ii.

811-814.

Plut.

Rom.

xvii.

Syll. x.

Livy, xxv.

7, 14,

&c.

76

CULTS, MYTHS.

AND RELIGIONS

curious variant of the legend, according to which Tarpeia


falls

in love

with Brennus, betrays the Capitol to the

Gauls,

and

is

whelmed under

their arms.
is

Nor

is

this

the only feature of the story which

connected both

with the Sabines and the Gauls.

Capitol the Porta Pandana'^


open
;

but our authorities

differ

The little gate of the had always to be left as to whether this was a
~

condition of peace imposed by the Sabine Tatius

or

an

exaction of Brennus the Gaul.-'

detail

which astonished Schwegler was the quantity


of

and beauty
Sabines
the
;

the gold ornaments attributed to the

he suspected a confusion between them and

Gauls,

whose weakness

for

decorative

effect

was

notorious.*

Mr. Pais counters the objection

by pointing

out that the armillae and rings of gold were equally


appropriate to the Sabines, whose wealth in the precious

metals was eulogised by Fabius Pictor, and whose arms,


in

310 and 293


silver.^

B.C.,

are described as glittering with gold

and

However, as the ancient world was always


I

impressed by the size of the Gaulish shields,


to fancy that the legend owes
of a pile of
its

am

inclined

inception to the sight

them intermixed with the gold ornaments


Celts

worn by the
tion,

on their campaigns.

But, as a tradi-

which we
GaUic

are justified in

considering historical,

reported a Sabine occupation of the Capitol long before

the
'

invasion,

two
;

rival

legends

Gaulish
42
;

and
i.

Paulus Diaconus,
iv. 3.
' :

p.

220

cf.

Varr. Ling.

lat. v.

Solinus,

13

Arnobius,

- Festus, p. 363 When making peace, Tatius insisted that the gate should always be open to the Sabines ut ea Sabinis semper
'

pateret.
^ *
^

Polyaen. viii. 25, i. Livy, vii. 10 Gell. ix. 11, 5 Pais, Ancient Legends, p. 298
;

xiii. 3,
cf.

Pliny, xxiii.
ii.

5, 15,

Plut. Cat. maior,

&c. Livy, ix.

40

x. 39.

TARPEIA
Sabine

^^

sprang

up, the second of which


it

won

the

more

general acceptance, partly because


distant period,

referred to a

more

and
'
:

partly, perhaps, because the Sabine


less

conquest evoked the

painful

memories at Rome.
death assigned to

Schwegler writes

The nature
has,

of the

Tarpeia has undoubtedly a local reason which cannot

be divined,'
the

and Mr. Pais


I

more
I

recently,

come

to

same

conclusion.

believe

have shown that the

problem

may be

solved without allowing hypothesis to

play too great a part.

XI

When
literary

it

was a question
of of

of crystallising

and

fixing the

form

the Tarpeian

legends,
;

the historians

drew upon the treasury


found
all

Greek fable

and there they


first

the analogies they desired.

In the

place,

there was a whole string of stories dealing with fair and


frail ladies

who betrayed

their relatives, or

who

delivered

up

their cities in order to pleasure the object of their

affections."

Other narratives wear a closer resemblance

to the one

which

finally

gained the day in the case of


is

Tarpeia.

The

most

interesting

that

of

Pisidice,

daughter of the king of Methymna in the island of Lesbos.

was besieging the town, when the princess, catching sight of him from the battlements, lost her heart, and sent out her nurse, offering to sell the town in exchange
Achilles
for his love.

The hero promised


Parthenius
''

all

but, once master

of

Methymna, bade
this

his soldiers stone the girl to death.

In

connection,

repeats

the
as

lines

of

some poet (perhaps ApoUonius Rhodius,


*

K. Miiller

Schwegler, Rom. Gesch. vol.


Paris, op. laud. p. 299
;

i.

p. 487.
i.

*
'

cf.

Schwegler, Rom. Gesch. vol.

p. 484.

Parthenius, Erotica, xxi.

78

CULTS. MYTHS,
who sang
There
is

AND RELIGIONS
to think the legend
of course, excludes of

conjectured),

the early history of Lesbos in

hexameters.

some reason

was already known to Hesiod,^ which,


the idea that
Tarpeia.
it is

might have been borrowed from that


Parallelae
'

This

not the case with the story of Brennus at


'

Ephesus, as related in the


to Plutarch

falsely attributed
'

on
'

the strength of a soi-disant

History of

the Galatians

{rakaTiKo) by Clitophon.-

The Gaulish
girl,

chief Brennus, while ravaging Asia, laid siege to Ephesus.

There he succumbed to the charms

of a

young Greek

who promised
Ephesus
collars

to
if

comply with

his

desires

and betray
his

to boot,

she might have an equivalent in gold

and ornaments.
all

Brennus ordered

men

to

throw

the gold they had into the lap of this mercenary


;

light-of-love

they obeyed, and she was buried alive under


story contrives to be both revolting

the gauds.

The

and

absurd

the

girl

could not promise her love-sick Gaul


;

the town-keys over and above her favours

there
in

must
which

have been an older and more rational version


she
fell
it

in love with Brennus, as Pisidice with Achilles.


is

But

well

known how
'

little

value can be attached to


fill

the extracts from authors, real or mythical, which


'

the

Parallelae Minores

that pass under Plutarch's name.

The story of Polycrite of Naxos inspires more confidence, as it was known already to Aristotle.^ Polycrite won the
love of Diognetus, the chief of the Erythraeans besieging

Naxos, and exploited her conquest by opening the campgates


to

her

countrymen.

After

the

slaughter,

she

returned in triumph to her native town, but was suffocated

under the garlands showered upon her by her fellow1

2 ^

Cf. Hofer, in Roscher's Lexikon, art. 'Peisidike,' p. 1793 Pseudo-Plut. Payall. Min. c. xv. Cf. Hofer's article 'Polykrite,' in Roscher's Lexikon, p. 2650.

TARPEIA
citizens,

79

who then
four

erected a
all

tomb

in her

honour.
this

Though
story

the

circumstances are

different,
siege,

pretty

comprises
betrayal,

elements

love

intrigue,

a
are

and the suffocation


least

of the traitress

which

found in at

one version of the story of Tarpeia.

XII
Thus, once again, though by devious waj's,
I

have
rite

shown how a
is

rite

gave birth to a myth.

Here the

a taboo of the spoils of

war

the custom of upheaping


to touch

them on consecrated ground, where


sacrilege.

them was

The myth
says)
for

is is

that of the local heroine

the
is

genius loci (for there

no place without
under
this
pile

its

genius, as

Servius
to

suffocated
its

of

weapons
the

atone

some imagined crime.


then the reality that gave

Euhemerism
;

right,

every legend has


is

root in reality
it

but

if

legend

old,

life is

not an

episode of history but a ritual

a cult-practice.

CHAPTER V
THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS
^

The domestic

animals

the

dog, the horse, the ox, the

sheep, the pig, the poultry of our farm-yards


old friends to the

are such
their

European that he rarely asks himself


fate

what were the circumstances which linked


to his
realise
;

in fact,

it

requires

some

effort

of thought to

that

it

was not always so


over
;

linked.

That
a

effort

had not been made by the redactor


philosophy,
privilege of

of Genesis.
is

In his

dominion

animals

God-given

man's nature

and the animals are accommoSo docile


before his

dating enough to submit without a struggle.


are they that the
face,
first

man

watches them

file

and learns
(ii.

their

names from the mouth

of the living

God
there

ig).

Immediately on the expulsion of

Adam
soil
:

and Eve from Paradise,


is

Adam

begins to

till

the

no hint

of the

long-drawn years when

man

lived

by hunting

alone,

or

by gathering the
is

fruits of earth.

Of the two sons of Adam, Abel


a husbandman.
True,
Genesis, the famous
'

a shepherd, Cain
as
well,

we Nimrod

find
;

a hunter,

in

but Nimrod was a powerful

address given, in 1902, at the Univcrsite Populaire (8inp arronAn extremely instructive development of the same subject is to be found in Jevons, Introduction to the History of Religion,
dissement, Paris).
pp. 113 sq.

An

80

THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS


chief,

8i

and seems

to

have hunted
is

for pleasure,

Hke the

kings of Assyria.

There

nothing
of

in the text to indicate

Then came the Noah Of every clean beast thou shalt take to thee by sevens, the male and and of beasts that are not clean by twos, his female Of fowls also of the air by the male and his female.
that he did so as a

means

Hvehhood.
:

Deluge, and the Lord said to

'

sevens, the male

and the female

to

keep seed alive

upon the

face of all the earth.' Beasts and birds alike showed themselves complacent and entered the Ark, though the Biblical historian forgets to say how, for the

eight long

months

of the Flood,

Noah

contrived to feed

this menagerie,

or accomplished the

still

more

difficult

feat of keeping the lion

from the stag and making the


Quite lately, a leading

wolf to

lie

down with

the lamb.

light of the

French clergy decided that the narrative need not be taken literally, a concession for which we

owe him much thanks. The Greek had less childlike ideas on the past of mankind. He knew perfectly well that men had been
hunters before they were shepherds, and shepherds before

they were agriculturists


heroes or demigods to
first

he had even names for the he attributed the credit of

whom

taming wild animals or inventing the plough. During whole of the Middle Ages the in fact, down to our own
time

the authority of the Biblical narrative and the risk


it

of disputing

were enough to deter scholars from any


civilisation, alluring

study of the origins of

though the

theme might be. The nineteenth century, however, made up for lost time. Archaeology has shown that the oldest human habitations, the caverns of the quaternary
period,

contain so far no trace of domestic animals.

The tenants of the caves lived by the chase, and the

82

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
all

animals which they hunted were


lies

wild.

The proof
whereas

in the fact that the

bones found among the reHcs

of their meals belong to animals of all ages,

pastoral
killing

and agricultural peoples

refrain, as a rule,

from

young beasts. The exploration of the lake dwellings of Switzerland and France, huts built on piles at a little distance from
the water-edge, has demonstrated that domestic animals

were known
interval
of

in the polished-flint age,

which

after a long
five to

transition

succeeded

the

quaternary era.

Similarly, in

Egypt and Babylonia, where the spade has


civilisations

exhumed dead

which flourished from

six thousand years before Christ, some of the domestic

animals are missing, but others, notably the dog and the
ox, are

found from the very

earliest periods.

How came man


animals
?

to conceive the idea of domesticating

Before answering the question, we

may

ob-

serve that there are huge tracts of territory in the world

which were absolutely devoid


a period very near our own.

of

domestic animals until

There was not a single

domestic animal in Australia, when that continent was


discovered by the Dutch, and to this day the natives

have neither

flocks nor herds.

When

the

New World
single

was sighted by Columbus, America had only a

domestic animal, the llama, and that was confined to In Peru. Cattle, dogs, and horses were all unknown.

North America the only wild cattle were bison, and the Indians had as yet made no attempt to domesticate
them.

For domestic animals

to exist in

any country,

that,

country must obviously possess animals, in the wild


state,

which are susceptible


is

of domestication.

Now,

in

Australia, the kangaroo

indigenous but not domestic-

THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS


able
;

83

and

in neither of

the Americas were there any

horses, goats, or sheep for

men

first

to

tame and then

domesticate.

But even
do
or,

if

animals capable of being domesticated

exist,

man
if

is

none the wiser. Nothing but experiment

rather, a long course of experiment

will

open

his

eyes.

But

he has no conception of domestication


he,

how
?

could he,

and why should

try

any experiment

Accident might perhaps lead to the discovery of gold,


copper, or iron ore, but
of
it

could not lead to the discovery


that an animal
is

a domestic animal, for the fact


its

domestic presupposes

education by man.

Up
enough.
to live
da}^

to late years the difficulty


first

was explained away

on an assumption which at

sight looks satisfactory

Take the case by the


flesh of
kill

of a savage

who makes
is

shift

animals killed in hunting.


a wild

One

he happens to

cow which

suckling two

The sentiment of compassion, which is natural to man, moves him to spare these little animals, and to give them to his children as playfellows. They grow up, pair, have young in their turn, and, at
calves of different sexes.

the end of a few generations, the habit of living in contact

with

man

has

transformed

the

breed

into

domestic

animals.
It is a pretty

romance, but a romance none the


in palpable impossibilities.

less

and one that abounds


first

In the
spear

place, the savage

has no food-reserves.
lives

who depends on He is not an

his

bow and
suffers

agriculturist,

but

from hand to mouth, and very often

hunger

owing to the lack of game.


civilised

We

have

still

people, in our

communities,

who both

suffer
is

hunger and die


scandal was

from hunger.

But what to-day


rule.

a social

once virtually the

To the savage death from G2

84

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
of existence,

starvation
faculty

was the normal end


in the Is

and

his every

was strained
it

one endeavour to procure his

daily bread.

reasonable to suppose that a savage

young bull and a young heifer hard hand outside his hut, would not be tempted a hundred times to kill and eat them before they obtained the age
of this type, with a

at

of reproduction

Any

pleasure he might have derived


cloy,

from playing with them would soon


certainly be inadequate to
still

and would

the pangs of hunger.

Will

it

be said that, hungry as he was, he spared them, in


that

the hope
species,

they would grow up, reproduce their


of a sub:

and eventually make him the owner


?

stantial herd of cattle

The

idea

is

sheer folly

a savage

cannot dream

of a herd, like Perrette,

when he does not


Ignoti

know what

herd means

^that

tame animals can repro-

duce themselves, and multiply under his eyes.


nulla cupido
!

There

is

another reason which invalidates the theory

of a transformation of pet animals into domestic animals.

At the present day we are acquainted with peoples in South Africa, and elsewhere, who know nothing of agriIf culture, and live entirely on their flocks and herds.
it

were true that hunters became herdsmen

for the

sake

of having more animals to eat, and those within easier

reach,

we should

naturally expect the herdsman to be a

great flesh-eater.

Now, the exact opposite


;

is

the case.
fru-

Hunters are essentially carnivorous


the butter and cheese which
of their animals to
kill

herdsmen are

givorous, and feed only on the milk of their cattle and


it

yields.

They

are too fond


;

them save

at the last extremity

and they are


while
still

especially

careful never

to destroy

them

able to breed, or, in the case of the females,

to give milk.

The

Kaffirs

only

kill

their cattle as a

THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS


sacrifice to the gods, or to celebrate a

85

wedding.

A
ill,

close

observer, Schweinfurth, says that the Dinkas in South

Africa never

kill

a cow, and that,

if

one

falls

she

is

separated from the rest of the herd and tended in a large

hut constructed for the purpose.

Should an epidemic

or a raid thin the animals belonging to a

Dinka

tribe,

As similar all the members show the greatest sorrow. phenomena have been observed among pastoral peoples elsewhere, it would seem that the herdsman in other

words,

the

man who

has succeeded in domesticating


his only

animals

never dreams of eating them,


not everyone
;

thought

being to keep them and increase their numbers.


It is

who can study

the savage in his


is

native wilds

but the young savage


that

always with

us.
? ?

Now what
I

is it

we

are obliged to impress on children


children.
Is
it

mean

strong

and healthy

to

eat

Certainly not, but rather not to eat too much.

The
:

natural instinct of

man

is

to use,

and abuse, food

the

gourmand

is

first

cousin to the cannibal.

To persuade
likes,

a savage, or a child to abstain from food which he a strong deterrent must be urged,
of all deterrents, fear.
or, rather,

the strongest

To

return to our savage hunter.

If

no restraint were
it

put upon his passion for destruction, subserving as


does an appetite sharpened by
life

in the

open

air,

he
;

would soon slaughter every creature


depopulate
forest,

in his

neighbourhood

plain,

and

hill

continue the work of devastation.

move on, and Unless a new factor


then

intervened to stay the butchery, domestic animals could

never come into existence, for the simple reason that


all

the wild animals would be

bound

to disappear after

a few centuries of unintermittent massacre.

But they have not disappeared,

either in

Europe or

86

CULTS, MYTHS,
;

AND RELIGIONS
man
has domesticated

Asia or Africa
a certain

and we

see that

number

of species.

Consequently there must


sufficient

have been a time when fear operated with


effect to force

him
was

to

kill

with discrimination, and to

strike a truce with particular kinds of animals.

That
sunk

fear

religion.

Fear,'

said the ancients,

'gave birth to the gods.'


their

But the ancients had not


;

plummet

as

deep as the moderns

and

it

was a mistaken genealogy that made the gods the


born of
or
of
fear.

first-

The

idea of gods in the image of man,


in

one God uniting


is

himself

all

the powers of
all

Nature,

comparatively modern.
all

Not
;

communities
is

have gods, but

have a
it is

religion

religion

older

than the gods, and


fear.

she

who

is

the daughter of

Rehgion

is

the

name

given to a complex of scruples

impeding the natural appetites of man, and curtailing the

Thus it may be said with perfect truth that morality, law, and civilisation Without it man would itself, are the outcome of religion.
free exercise of his physical faculties.

never have learnt to put restraint upon himself, even

when he most
of

rebelled against the restraint


featherless biped.
of

he would

have remained forever a

The point
religion
in
;

view which questions the advantage


is

already civilised communities

perhaps comprehensible

but

it

cannot be doubted that non-civilised communities


their

owe to religion One of the


religion
is

emergence out of barbarism.

oldest

and most widely diffused forms


kill

of

the reluctance to
scruple which
is

and
far

eat

animal

still

some particular removed from ex;

tinction.

Mohammedans and Jews


will

eat no pork

the

Russian
at

not touch a pigeon

Europeans

in general,
;

any rate

do not regard the dog as an edible animal

THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS


and, in

87

many

cases,

horse-meat inspires an instinctive


article of rehgion.

repugnance which was once an

In America, Asia, and Oceania the study of present-

day savages, and


that

their reservations in kilHng

and eating
believes
is

animals, has elicited a curious fact.

The savage
for

certain animal,
its

the bear

instance,
its

the
It

ancestor of his tribe,


is

sworn

ally,

and
is

protector.

not an individual animal that

sacred in his eyes,


tribe,
if

but a whole species


use the expression.
to

whole animal

we may
seems

And,

in fact, closer attention

show that
tribes,

it

literally is

a case of a solemn league and

covenant, for offensive and defensive purposes, between

two

one composed
first

of

men and
of a

the
is

other

of

animals.

The

condition

treaty

that the

contracting parties shall spare each other.

observes the convention

and the animals,


still

The savage when they


If

are not carnivorous, do so in the nature of things.

they are carnivorous, the savage


spare his
is

imagines

they
faith,

own

clan

for religion, the

daughter of

apt to become the mother of credulity,

Totemism
distinctive

from
or

the American word totem or otem,


sign

mark

is

the

name

given to that
is

primitive
tribe of

form of

religion

whose essence

that

men

considers itself linked

by an enduring pact
all

to a species of animals.

This totemism was the oldest form of

religions.

Long before he had

gods,

the savage had his sacred

animals to which he stood in the double relation of


protector and protected.
there
in a
is

At the root

of this

phenomenon, and
ex-

not only the sympathy which an animal inspires


child, there is also the curiosity

savage and a

fear

which an animal awakens.

Children are

still

tremely susceptible to both

feelings.

To the

child, the

88

CULTS, MYTHS,
is

AND RELIGIONS
see the lions

fear of a wolf

a more real thing than the fear of a


far rather

policeman

and he had

and

tigers in the Zoological

Gardens than watch the

fine ladies

in

primitive

Hyde Park or the Allee des Acacias. Once admit that man was totemistic and the domestication of
is

animals

explained in the simplest and easiest manner.


living in old

Imagine a nation of primitive hunters

France, a country whose indigenous animals included


bulls, horses, goats, bears,

and wolves

to

go no further.
little its

These hunters

are

divided into clans or

tribes,

every one of which claims a different animal as

ancestor.

The and

wolf-clan believes
to

itself to

be descended from a wolf,


;

have made a treaty


a

of alliance with all wolves

it

cannot therefore, except


defence,
kill

in the case of legitimate self-

wolf.

The

horse-clan
kill

thinks

itself

descended from a horse, and cannot

one without

committing a horrible crime

and
is

so on.

Each

clan,

as a matter of course, abstains


its

from hunting and


not enough.

killing

patron animal.

But that

Since the
it

animals are the protectors of the clan, guide

in its

wanderings, and give notice of impending danger either

by

cries or

by

signs of uneasiness,

two or more

of the

species

must always be kept with the clan by way


These couples

of

sentinels.

which

naturally have to be

taken at the tenderest age possible

grow accustomed to
;

man, and are soon perfectly tame


born and bred
friends.
will
It

while the young,


its

in the

very midst of the clan, become


clearly

must be

understood that

all

this

take place only

possesses

when the animal chosen as totem the attributes which make for domestication.
is

Thus the bear may be tamed, but


animal
;

not a domestic
cart,

it

can neither be trained to draw a

nor

trusted to keep a disinterested eye

upon the

herds.


THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS
few species of wolves or jackals,
first

89
after-

tamed and

wards domesticated, have given dog


;

man

his best friend, the


is

still,

the wolf-species, as a rule,

quite intractable,

and has remained the consistent

foe of
thfc

humanity.

On

the other hand, the horse, the bull,

wild boar, and

the goat, not to mention geese and the various kinds of


fowl,

have almost everywhere passed from independence

to domestication.

In what part of the world was the domestication of

animals

first

achieved

We

do not know.
;

Possibly,

in several places at the of

same time

for

it is

the product
to
of

two

factors,

one of which

have been universal, while


domesticable animals

totemism^appears the other the presence


a
condition
satisfied

was

in

multitude of countries, Asian, African, and European.


Archaeology, however, furnishes an interesting sidelight.

In the villages on the Danish coast (the oldest


habitations of the post-quaternary period)

human

we

find the

bones of the

common

or domestic dog in the midst of a


shell-fish,

huge

pile of relics

edible
killed

and the bones

of deer,

boars,

and

birds,

and eaten by man.

It is also

noticeable that these animal bones are often gnawed,

and that the

incisions in

them

are due to dogs' teeth.


left

But

for dogs to

gnaw

the bones

from the

m^eals of

these

village

hunters and fishermen,


;

they must have

lived with

them

in other words,

they were domestic

dogs.

Thus, as far as the present state of our knowledge


allows

us

to

judge,

the
;

first

animal domesticated in

Europe was the dog


existence are

the earliest indications of his


;

met with on the shores of Denmark and his domestication must date from the long period some five or six thousand years between the end of the

90

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
flint

quaternary era and the civilisation of the pohshed


age, such as

land.

we know it from the lake dwellings of SwitzerThe question remains What is the origin of the
:

domestic dog

Is it

from the wolf, which inhabits both from the


jackal,

Europe and

Asia, or

which

is

almost

? The experts are still at variance. Under any circumstances, it would be decidedly singular if the domestic dog came from Asia, and Asiatic tribes had taken the road, with their dogs, to catch shell-fish

confined to Asia

on the coasts

of

Denmark.
dog
is

Common

sense inclines one

to suppose that the

a descendant, domesticated

by

totemism, of some species of wolf which inhabited the


dense forests of Europe at a time intermediate between
the quaternary epoch and the present geological formation.

In any case, there are so

many

varieties of dogs

that the gradual evolution of certain wolves and jackals


into domestic dogs

might have taken place

in several

parts of the world at the

same

or different times.
'

The most

recent of these
is

conquests of man,' to use

Buffon's phrase,

none the
:

less instructive

because

it is

even yet incomplete


the cat.

refer to the domestication of


far
It

The
it

cat

is

still

from being as thoroughly


abhors being chained up
;
;

domesticated as the dog.


if it

hunts,

hunts on

its

own account
even

and

its

instincts

of independence

of

revolt,

are

often

only too

patent

The domestic

cat

the Greeks and Romans.

was practically unknown to The rarity of its appearances


and fourth centuries
B.C.

on the painted vases

of the fifth

confirms the silence of the written tradition.

In Pompeii,

where the remains

of

multifarious animals have been


lapilli,

discovered under the rain of


'

the cat has so far been

For a recent discussion, see L'Anthropologie, 1904, p. 41, where the whole question has been well summed up by M. U. Duerst.

THE DOMESTICATION OF ANIMALS


sought in vain.'

f)i

The only country where

it

abounded,

and had
There
it

done so from the remotest antiquity,


Bubastis, where cat-mummies

was Egypt.
in

was regarded as a sacred animal, especiahy

the

nome
by

of

may

be counted

tens of thousands.
crime.

To

kill

a cat

was considered a
later

monstrous

In

fact,

under one of the

Ptolemies, a

in this respect,

Roman, who had unwittingly transgressed was torn to pieces by the crowd, despite
of

the efforts of the local authorities.-

The
IMore,

exportation

cats

was

strictly

forbidden.

from time to time an Egyptian commission travelled

through the Mediterranean countries in order to buy and


bring back every cat which had been lured out of Egypt.

After the triumph of Christianity in Egypt, during the


fourth century, these old laws naturally
fell

into desuetude.
to

Simultaneously, the Greek

monks began
Its

leave the
;

land of Pharaoh to travel and preach in Europe

and

with them went the


for just then the rat

cat.

advent was well timed,

equally

unknown
rats

to the ancient

world

appeared
no
less

from Asia

in the train of the

Huns

so

that in the fifth century cats


fields

and

had

their stricken

than Attila and Theodoric.

Thus the

cat,

a local totem in Egypt, tamed and domesticated in


that country only, spread over Europe

paganism had vanished and

all

the

when Egyptian barriers reared by


which
I

the old cult had been levelled with the ground."

The theory
have
later

of the domestication of animals,


first

just
it

expounded, was

broached by Mr. Frazer


finally
'

was taken up by Galton, and

developed by

Mr. Jevons in his Introduction to the History of Religion,'


'

Compare Engelmann,

Jahrbiich des Instituts, 1899, p. 136.


p. 264.

Diodorus Siculus, i. 83, 8. Cf. Gazette des Beaux-Arts, 1900,

92

CULTS, MYTHS.

AND RELIGIONS
I

published in 1896.
to

In France,
in

think, I

was the

first

advocate

it,

both

my
It is

lectures at the cole

du

Louvre and
plant-life

in the press.

equally applicable to the

domestication of vegetables, the beginning of cultivated


;

and

it

seems to

me

that, as a logical conse-

quence of animal or vegetable totemism, the primitive

form of

all religion, it

holds the field to the exclusion of

every other hypothesis.

CHAPTER

VI
^

THE KING SACRIFICED

Towards the close of the year 1900, there appeared a new edition of Mr. Frazer's celebrated work, The Golden
*

Bough.'

The

result

was a sensation bordering on the

scandalous.

In a hitherto unpublished part of the third

volume, Mr. Frazer, starting from the observations of


Messrs. Wendland,

Cumont, Parmentier, and

others, pro-

posed

though

under every reservation

to recognise

an

element of

The sequel
discussion,

myth and ritual in the tragedy of Golgotha. among English scholars has been a prolonged
though the echoes
of
it

have hardly reached


is

France.

The gravity

of the question

such,

and
a

its

connection with anthropology so close,


detailed

that

fairly

summary

of

it

will

not be out of place here.

Many
same

countries, at particular seasons, hold a festival

similar to the

Roman

Saturnalia and

marked by the
and moral
laws.

brief suspension of the usual civic

These periods of exaltation and exuberant joy generally


coincide

with
'

seed-time

or

harvest.

At

Rome,

the

L'Anthropologie, 1902, pp. 620-627.

93

94

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
commemorate
class

Saturnalia were supposed to


reign of Saturn, an era

the blissful

when

there was neither discord

among men, nor


constraint in

distinction

between

and

class,

nor

any shape.

Over

this

Golden Age there

hung one

sinister

shadow
trace.

human

sacrifice.

But

in the

Roman
rite

Saturnalia, which lasted seven days, the hated


left

had

no

The outstanding

characteristic

of the feast

was

the license granted to the slaves,


of the house.

who,
of

for the nonce,

became masters
lot,

One

them, chosen by

took the style of king, and issued


:

fantastic edicts to his subjects


sing, a third carry a flute-girl

one must dance, another

on his back, and so forth.

In

Roman

eyes the whole proceeding was a burlesque

of royalty.

In the provinces things ran the same course


here

but
cast.

we meet
of

features of an apparently

more archaic

We have a detailed account of the Saturnalia, as celebrated


encamped on the Danube, at Durostolum, in the reigns of Maximian and Diocletian. The description is preserved in a history of the martyrdom of St. Dasius, published by M. Cumont, in 1897, after

by a troop

Roman

soldiers

a Greek manuscript

in

the

Bibliotheque

Nationale.i
lot

Thirty days before the feast the soldiers chose by


a

handsome youth, whom they dressed in royal robes and hailed as the representative of good king Saturn. Surrounded by a brilliant escort, he paraded the streets, with full authority to use and abuse his power, until, on the thirtieth day, he was compelled to kill himself on the
altar of the Saturn
lot
fell

whom

he personified.
soldier Dasius,

In 303 the

upon the Christian

who

refused

Cumont, Analecta Bollandiana, vol. xvi., and Man, 1901, p. 66; Parmentier, Revue de Philologie, 1897, p. 143 A. Lang, Man, 1901,
' ;

p. 83.

THE KING SACRIFICED


to play a part in

95

which he

\v(nild

have to stain himself

with debauchery immediately before death.

He was
20,

beheaded at Durostolum on Friday, November

which

(adds the narrative) was the twenty-fourth day of the

moon.

At Rome, during the


but the story of
St.

classical period, the Saturnalian

king was simply a stage monarch

an inoffensive clown
human

Dasius appears to hint at an earlier

day when he
traces of

forfeited his life along with his crown,

and

the feast terminated in one of those

sacrifices,

which are vaguely preserved by our


this is

authorities.^

Further

and

an essential point
of a god.

the man-victim
is

was the representative

The Carnival
nor
less

of

Christian nations
Saturnalia.
of

neither

more

than the

Roman

In Italy, Spain,

and France, where the influence


Carnival

Rome

has been

deepest and most persistent, a salient feature of the


is

the making of a grotesque effigy,

which
is

personifies the feast, and, after a fleeting

term of glory,

destroyed or burnt in public.


is

This King of the Carnival

merely a survival of the god Saturn.

When
when
it

the

Roman

year began on the ist of January,

the Saturnalia were celebrated in

December

earlier,

used to open on the ist of March, they were

held in February or the beginning of

remains

the date of the Carnival.

Matronalia, in
privileges as

March and this The feast of the which the female slaves enjoyed the same
;

the males during the Saturnalia, always

1 On the supposition, of course, that the rite of Durostolum was an old custom revivified. It is, however, quite possible that it was only a more barbarous form of an originally harmless practice. In the

Roman

empire, after the second century, there are many traces of moral brutalisation and mental retrogression a phenomenon, which may, to a large extent, be explained by the invasion of oriental cults.

96

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
It

continued to be celebrated on the ist of March.

was

the time of tillage and sowing, an obviously appropriate

season for the cult of Saturn,


agricultural

who was pre-eminently an

god

{sata

crops).
Rhodes,

Customs analogous to the Roman Saturnalia existed


in

Crete,

Thessaly,

Olympia,
called

and elsewhere.
;

The Greek Saturn was


sacrifice.

Kronos
his

and there are

well-known traditions associating

cult with

human

honour

and, in the later periods, this

Every year the Rhodians slew a man in his man was a criminal

condemned by common law exactly as among the Celts The procedure was to lead the victim in Caesar's lifetime. outside the city, make him drunk, and then cut his
throat.

Even more
for

curious

was the

feast of the Sacaea,

which lasted

five

days in Babylon.
;

As
and

in

Rome,

the servant was exalted above his lord

in every

house a slave clothed in kingly attire, and wearing the


title of

Zoganes, exercised a short-lived power.

Nor was
the
close

this

all.

criminal under sentence of death was robed


to act as such, even to

as a king

and authorised

extent of enjoying the royal concubines.


of the festival,

At the

he was stripped of his


or crucified.

fine linen, scourged,

and

either

hanged

All these details

were

drawn by Athenseus and Dion from authors who wrote


centuries before the Christian era.

The Babylonian

festival of the Sacsea

took place at
It

the beginning of the year, about the 25th of March.

may, perhaps, be identified with one in honour of the great god Marduk, which is mentioned in the earliest
Babylonian
texts.

In 1891 Herr
origin
of

Zimmern
in

recognised in the Sac?ea


{lots).

the
first

the
of
it

Jewish feast of Purim


is

The
which

mention

the book of

Esther,

was

THE KING SACRIFICED

97

written after the return of the Jews from captivity and

cannot be assigned to an earher date than the fourth

The book of Esther is a novel with a purpose, and the object is to supply a motive for the Purhn. This was a bacchanalian fete, which lasted two days, and was still, in the eighteenth century, celebrated with scandalous freedom and uproar. The story of Esther is well known. The king of Persia has a vizier, Haman, who has been offended by the Jew, Mordecai. The vizier prepares a gallows on which he hopes to hang
century B.C.
his

enemy, while he himself

shall ride in state

through the

town, clad in the royal robes, wearing the royal crown,

and mounted on the king's own


the tables are turned
:

horse.

Thanks

to Esther,

Ahasuerus hangs Haman, and the

royal honours are paid to Mordecai.

Here we have a
divided
(so

reminiscence

of

the

Sacaean
;

Zoganes,

to

speak) between two actors

one of

whom

hopes to play

the part of the king, but

is

hanged, while the other,

who

does play the part, escapes the fate intended for him.

The Babylonian affinities of the tale are for Mordecai accentuated by the names
:

still
is

further

evidently

Marduk, and Esther


goddess Istar

is

connected with the Babylonian

the

Astarte of the Greeks.


to identify

An
it

attempt

has even been

made

Haman
it

with an Elamite
is

god

of the

same name.
first

Be

this as

may,

certain

that the Jews, in celebrating the feast of Purim, were in

the habit of

crucifying, then burning,

an

effigy of

Haman.

law of the Theodosian Code forbade the


such a ceremony
;

crucifixion, as the use of the cross in

was regarded as an
communities
the
representation of

insult to Christianity

but in Jewish
or

custom

of

hanging

burning

Haman

has survived to our owti days.

We know

from Dion that the Babylonian Sacaea had

98

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
also that a feast similar

been introduced into Persia, and


to

Purim was celebrated both

at

Babylon and

in Persia.

At the beginning of spring, a beardless man was perched on an ass and triumphantly paraded through the town. He carried a fan and complained of the heat, while the people threw snow or cold water upon him. In the
course of his promenade, he stopped at the doors of the
rich

and

levied

contributions

in

a word,
till

the clown

played the part of a young Sun-king


day.

the end of the

At sunset

unless

he contrived to hide himself


:

he was beaten with he was put to death.


king
'

sticks

in earlier times,

no doubt,
'

This cavalcade of the


like

beardless

is

suspiciously
it is

the triumphal procession of

Mordecai, as

described in the book of Esther.

II

In an article in
scholar,

'

Hermes,' published in 1898, a German

Herr Wendland,

emphasised
of Christ

the

points

of

similarity

between the treatment

by the Roman

soldiers at Jerusalem,

and the treatment

of the Saturnalian

The analogy, he considered, might explain the royal robe and crown which the soldiery put on Jesus, on the ground that he claimed to be King of
King
at

Durostolum.

the Jews.

The

great

difhculty

is

the

date,

as

the

Roman
was put
con-

Saturnalia were held in


to death in the spring.

December and
It is

Christ

not impossible, however,

that the

Roman

garrison at Jerusalem

may have

formed to the ancient custom, placing the Saturnalia at the beginning of the year, which, under the old system,
fell

in

March.

In

any

case, the

resemblance of the Passion to the

THE KING SACRTFTCED


Sacaea
is

99

still

more

striking than its resemblance to the

Saturnalia.
'

Take

St.

Matthew's account

(xxvii.
:

26-31)

Then

released he Barabbas unto

them

and when he

had scourged Jesus, he delivered Him to be crucified. Then the soldiers of the governor took Jesus into the common hall, and gathered unto Him the whole band of
soldiers.

And

they stripped Him, and put on

Him

scarlet robe.

And when they had


it

plaited a crown of

upon His head, and a reed in His right hand, and they bowed the knee before Him, and mocked Him, saying, " Hail, King of the Jews " And
thorns, they put
!

they spit upon Him, and took the reed, and smote

Him

on the head.

And

after that they

had mocked Him,

they took the robe from Him, and put His

own raiment

on Him, and led

Him away

to crucify Him,'

Now

compare

this passage

with Dion Chrysostom's


to the king of

description of the treatment

meted out

the Sacsea
'

Taking one

of the prisoners sentenced to death,

they

seat

him on the
for several

throne, clothe

him

in royal vestments,

and
and

days permit him to drink and be merry,

to use the king's concubines.

But

at the

end

of his

term, they strip off his garments, and scourge and crucify
him.'
It is quite true

and

Mr. Frazer freely admits


Still,

it

that this
robe, the

may

be only a coincidence.
(for

the scarlet

crown

the theory, that the thorns were


is late),

designed to increase the sufferings of Christ,


reed-sceptre,

the

and the mock homage and done


ritual.

to a majesty that

was soon

to be insulted
like

to death

all

this

is

remarkably

an act of

Would a Roman
?

governor, for one moment, have allowed his soldiers to


act as buffoons before fulfilling their office as executioners

100

CULTS, MYTHS,
Mr. Frazer again asks
if

AND RELIGIONS
Christ

was not

crucified in

the character of

Haman,

in

accordance with the above-

mentioned
of

ritual of the feast of

Purim.

But the
;

feast

Purim

fell

on the fourteenth

of

Adar

that

is

to say,

exactly a

month

before Easter, which was the period of

the crucifixion.

In

fact,

we may say

generally that Mr.

Frazer has confused his theory by the introduction of

Haman and
The
on"e

Mordecai, to

whom
is

there

is

not the slightest

allusion in the Gospel tradition.

thing certain
in clarity,
if,

that the Gospel narratives


it

would gain
disguising

at that particular time,

was

customary to put a condemned criminal to death, after

him as a king. By the received account, Pilate was more sympathetic than hostile to Christ. Then why, all-powerful as he was, did he not spare him ?

On

the hypothesis suggested, the answer


all

is

easy

custom

demanded a victim and


It

that Pilate could do was to

leave the choice free between Ba.rabbas and Christ.

must

also

be remembered that, according to the

identically similar statements of the four Gospels, Pilate

had the

cross

surmounted by an

inscription, stating that

the executed criminal was the King of the Jews (INRI,


lesus Nazarenus Rex ludceorum).

In the reign of so

suspicious and jealous a sovereign as Tiberius, would "^a

Roman
it

governor have dared, even as a gruesome

jest,

to give the title king to a

condemned malefactor,

unless

was a formula sanctioned by custom and regularly


is

employed on these occasions ? The personality of Barabbas


that at the Easter festival
set free a prisoner
it

singular.
for the

We

are told

was usual

governor to
Pilate tried
:

nominated by the people.


to choose

to persuade the

mob

and spare Christ

they, on

the contrary, clamoured for his death and the liberation

THE KING SACRIFICED


of a certain Barabbas,

loi

who was
it

in prison for sedition

and

murder.
at
all ?

But why was

necessary to Hberate a prisoner

Mr. Frazer supposes that the

man who was

freed

was obliged to perambulate the and


pla}^ the part of

streets in royal robes

Mordecai, while the condemned

man

plaj'ed the part of

Haman.
;

There
it

is

nothing to authorise

such a supposition
as

but

is

certain that the story,

we have

it

in

the Gospels, cannot be understood.


is

Another curious circumstance


is

that the

name Barabbas
father
:

composed

of

two Aramaic words meaning son and

Barabbas, therefore, is The Son of the Father or exactly what Christ believed himself to be. Barabbas was to have been executed, Christ was executed in his stead
;

consequently,

it

must have been


cross.
is

as

Son

of the
is

Father that
disposed to

he was nailed to the


think that Barabbas

Mr. Frazer

not a name, but a surname given


;

to the victim chosen at this season

perhaps, because

Easter in Syrian countries was originally accompanied

by the
father.

sacrifice of the first-born


It

son dying for his

will
soil

be seen we are on more than shifting

ground
hand.

honeycombed by quagmires and abysms,


is

with will-o'-the-wisps alluring and misleading us on every

But that

no reason why a modern investigator


all

should pass by and dismiss as insignificant


sidelights of

these

myth and ritual. To complicate matters still more, Herr Wendland has
Philo,
it
is

disinterred a story of Philo's.

well

known,
the

was a Jewish philosopher who


the time of Christ.

lived

at Alexandria in

He

relates that

when Agrippa,

grandson of Herod, was invested by Caligula at


Alexandria on the

Rome

with the crown of Judaea, the young king passed through

way

to his

new

capital.

The populace

there was antisemitic, and the Jewish kinglet offered

102

CULTS, MYTHS,
target
for

AND RELIGIONS
Accordingly, they
of Carabas,

fair

their

buffoonery.

seized a poor idiot

by the name

wander the

streets,

stark naked, and pestered

who used to by the

gave him a reed

They put a crown on his head, him in sham robes of state, and surrounded him with a guard of honour. To make it more obvious that their satire was levelled at the princeling Agrippa, the crowd shouted Marin I Marin ! a Syriac word for Lord.' Here, again, we
attentions of small boys.
for sceptre, clothed

'

have a burlesque procession similar to that


Christ figured

in

which

a
this

fresh

proof that the procession at

Jerusalem was no
trary,

whim

of the

moment, but on the concertain


oriental
?

a normal feature

of

customs.
is is

But who was

luckless

Carabas

meaningless both in Hebrew and Syriac


certain that the mock-king,
set

The name and yet it

whom

the Alexandrian rabble

up in opposition to the despised Jewish monarch, must himself have been a Jew. It is tempting to take Carabas as a clerical error for Barabbas, which would be,
not a proper name, but the stock
title of

the stage-king

who

strutted his

little

hour

in certain festivals of the

same type as the Saturnalia and Sacaea. Now comes another fact which intensifies the obscurOrigen, ity and makes confusion doubly confounded. writing about the year 250 a.d., was familiar with manu^

scripts of St.
'

Matthew's gospel, which read


found

(xxvii.

16)

And they had

then a notable prisoner called Jesus


is still

Barabbas.'
of Greek,
first

This strange text

Aramaic, and Syrian codices.


of the

mention
6

words
'

\6y6fj,evo<i

'

name Barabbas is he who was called,


'

number Mark the preceded by the


in a

In

or

surnamed,
These

See the article

later facts are not

Barabbas in the Encyclopaedia mentioned by Mr. Frazer.


'

Biblica.

THE KING SACRIFICED


Barabbas.'

103

Can it be that this man was also called Jesus, and was given the surname Barabbas as a means of distinguishing him from Christ ? The assumption that two condemned criminals were both called Jesus is
so improbable that
then,
it

verges on the impossible. Barabbas,

would seem

to

have been a surname

and

in

an

old source,
to St.

known

to the compiler of the Gospel according

Matthew,

this

surname, or nickname, must have


Jesus Barabbas

been applied to Christ


of the Father.

Jesus,

the

Son
;

Thus Barabbas would be an

alias for Jesus

and the whole story


conclusions,

of the choice left to the people,

an

invention to explain the double name.

These are grave

which

mention without adopting.

An
part,

exceptionally trenchant intellect might perhaps evolve

a plausible theory out of this mass of data


I fail

for

my

to see

my way

clearly

and can do no more than

point

out

the elements of the problem

undoubtedly

one of the most absorbing that can engage the historian's


attention.

In his concluding observations, Mr. Frazer lays great


stress

on the following considerations.

As early

as the

year 112 a.d.,

we

see

from Pliny's

letter to

Trajan what
in

rapid strides Christianity had

already

made

Asia

Minor.
tion,

If

we

decline to admit a supernatural interven-

we

are forced to

assume^in view
soil

of this bewildering
spirit of Grgeco;

expansion of a creed so alien from the

Roman

culture

that the

was awaiting the seed

in

other words, that in Western Asia the lower strata of the

population were already permeated by analogous doctrines


of

an equally mystic character.

Now we know how

widespread in Asia were the cults of Attis and Adonis


cults

whose fundamental dogma was the unmerited

death and triumphant resurrection of a god.

Knowing

104
this,

CULTS, MYTHS,
we know

AND RELIGIONS
were predis-

also that the peoples of Asia

posed to accept without question what to them was the


twice-told tale of a
slain

man,

in

whom

there

was no

guilt,

by hands which a
'

little

before had garbed

regal purple.

In this form, the story of the


it

life

him in and

death of Jesus exerted an influence which

could never
is

have had

if

the great Teacher had died, as

commonly
shed round

supposed, the death of a vulgar malefactor.

It

the cross on Calvary a halo of divinity which multitudes

saw and worshipped


wherever

afar off

the blow struck on Gol-

gotha set a thousand expectant strings vibrating in unison

men had heard


i

the old, old story of the dying

and

risen God.'

It is to

be hoped that the miscellany of proofs, halfproofs,

proofs,

and potential

which we owe to Messrs.

Wendland, Cumont, and Frazer, may induce more than a few scholars to prosecute the question. For the moment
nothing has been absolutely demonstrated beyond the

secondary character of the gospel accounts of the Passion

and
work.

this
It is

has scarcely been in doubt since Strauss's


necessary to go further, and, by a microscopic

examination of the evidence, to reconstruct the primitive

and

original narrative

which

shall explain all

subsequent

developments of the legend.


claimed to do
;

This Mr. Frazer has not

but whoever

may

eventually succeed in

the difficult task must always owe him a heavy debt.


1

Frazer, Golden Bough, ed.

2, vol.

iii.

p. 197.

CHAPTER

VII
^

THE ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD

FusTEL DE CouLANGES, at the beginning of his Cite Antique/ shows by conclusive citations that, in Roman,
'

Greek and Hindoo


their

eyes, the

dead were gods to

whom

descendants

paid homage,

and whose aid they


recall the invo'

besought in prayer.

Here we need only


'

cation which Electra, in the

Choephoroe
as

of Aeschylus,

addresses to her father

Agamemnon,

he

lies

in the

tomb

'

And

I,

libation poviring to the dead,

" Pity me, Kindle thovi And A light within this palace. For we're sold By her that bare us outcast on the earth While he that in thy blood dipped murderous hands Slave and worse Sleeps in her bed. What am I ? Thy son strays beggared and the adulterers Sit hugely merry on thy ravished throne. I pray thee, send Orestes hitherward

Tims pray,

my

Sire invoking

dear Orestes pity.

lead back his wandering feet. Sweeten his cup Give ear, and grant me. Father, to become Sounder of mind by far than is my mother, With hands more pure."
;

'

Revue des iLtiides juives, 1900, pp. 161-173. A short sketch of appeared in the Strcna Helbigiana, Leipzig, 1900. - Aeschylus, reading (pws a.va\pou ii Choephoroe, 129-140 (Weil) ho/xois (131), and eV TOitn (to7s dpovota-t (i37)'
1

this article

105

io6

CULTS, MYTHS,
This solitary example
is

AND RELIGIONS
proof enough that the ancients

prayed

to

the dead, because

according

to their lights

man became a familiar god. The pagan worship of the dead, rendered impartially to rich and poor, was sharply reprobated by St. Augustine, who contrasted the humble honours shown by the
the dead
Christians to their martyrs
'
:

We

have

in

honour

of the

martyrs neither temples nor


nor
sacrifice
;

priests,

neither ceremony

for

they are not gods to us, and


their

we have
But who
standing
relics

none other god than

God.

Truly we venerate their


. . .

tombs

as those of trusty servants of God.


faithful

among the

hath ever heard a

priest,

before an altar built to God's glory over the holy


of the martyrs,

say

in his
?

prayer

Peter, Paul, or Cyprian,


sacrifice,
is

offer thee this sacrifice

For the
the

though

it

be

offered

on the tomb

of

martyrs,

nevertheless

offered to

God who made them men and martyrs and hath placed them among His
God
alone, even to that
angels.'
St.
i

Augustine was right in denying that the Chris:

tians offered sacrifices to the martyrs

the mass cele-

brated on their tombs from the end of the second century


bore a totally different character.
says nothing,
for
its

Of prayer the passage


to his

author knew that the selfsame

petitions were addressed

by the Christian
Saints.
close

to his

by the pagan mediators and

dead and

intercessors, the

In this respect, the cult of the Saints exhibits

analogies
;

with

the
is,

Grseco-Roman
that in

cult

of

the
the

dead

the difference

modern
prayer
is

religions

Saints are the only dead to

whom
;

made.

The
heroes

idea of an intercession
is

by dead and canonised


but the
belief that

foreign to
'

paganism

men

St.

Augustine, The City of God,

vi. 27.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


peculiarly acceptable to

107

God may
is

intercede with effect

in favour of their fellow-mortals

already evident in the


(xviii. 23),

Old Testament.

Thus, in Genesis

Abraham,

informed by the angels of the approaching destruction of

Sodom, begs the Almighty to spare the righteous, and not


to cut

them

off

with the wicked.

In Jeremiah

(xv. i)
will

the Lord Himself says to the prophet that


allow His just anger to be appeased, even

He

not
or

by Moses

Samuel
yet

'
:

Though Moses and Samuel stood


:

before me,

my mind could not be toward this people cast them out of my sight, and let them go forth.' The passage
is

of high importance, for

Moses and Samuel are obviously

regarded as departed sages that have attained heroic

rank

saints

honoured with access to the throne of the


cognisant of inter-

Almighty.

The Old Testament,


cession,

therefore,
its

is

and admits both


not cognisant of

possibility

and

its efficacy.

What

it is

general in Christianity

though the practice has been that centuries since the


first
is

a living person should beseech one of the illustrious dead


to intercede for
of the

him in the presence of God. The prayers Hebrew ascend directly to the Supreme Being,
'

the Christian has often need of an ambassador.


In his treatise

De

Corona,' dating from about the

year 200, TertulHan enumerates the different Christian


practices which
text. 3

are not

dependent on any Scriptural


he
finds
'

One
is

of

these

in

offerings

for
'

the

dead, ohlationes pro defunctis.

Certainly,' he says,

the

custom

not prescribed by the written law, but


it,

tradi-

tion authorises

custom confirms

it,

and
will

faith observes

A number
Tertullian,

of

somewhat obscure examples


Corona,
iv.

be found in the

seventh chapter of Esdras IV.


-

De

io8
it.

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
of
it

More, tradition, custom, and faith are backed by


:

reason

if

you are not certain

yourselves, another

who
of

is

certain will teach you.'

The
of

passage, for

all

its

brevity, reveals several facts.

Firstly, the pious

custom

making

offerings

on behalf

the dead

Tertullian omits to say in


force

what they

unluckily consisted was


letter of the
;

in

among

the Christian communities of the second


i
;

century after Christ

secondly, objections

had already

been raised by those who clung to the

Law

and

insisted

upon

all rites

being justiiied by texts

thirdly,

Tertulhan had no texts to quote, and was forced to


appeal from tradition to reason,
ratio, as

interpreted

by

the only competent authorities, the pastors of the faithful.

The same author, in his treatise De Monogamia,' " speaks of a widow who prayed for her husband's soul,
'

pleaded for his beatitude, expressed the hope of being


reunited
offerings

to

him

in

the

first

resurrection,
of his

and made
These

on

each

anniversary

death.

practices furnished Tertullian with an

argument against

second marriages.

If

a widower, he says, marries again,


in the flesh,

he

will

have two wives, one

and one
first

in the
offer

spirit.

Will he not pray for the soul of the


?
"'

and

sacrifice for her salvation

But, in that case, he must


It is well

in

God's sight be guilty of bigamy.

known

that

in this respect, as in others, the

Church has not admitted

the strict doctrine of Tertullian.


1 There is undoubtedly an allusion to prayer for the dead in the epitaph of Abercius, which was discovered in Phrygia and is of earlier date than the year 216 [cf. H. Marucchi, Elements d'archeol. chretienne, vol. i. p. 296). I am still unable to understand the text altogether, but I cannot subscribe to the over-ingenious theory by which M. Dietrich attempts to establish its pagan origin (cf. Revue critique,

December
-

14,

1896).

Tertullian, Tertullian,

De Monogamia, De exhort, castit.

x.
xi.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD

109

The bishop Acrius, about 355 a.d., and the priest Vigilantius, some forty-five years later, declared war on
the custom of prayers for the dead and the appeal to the intercession of Saints.
these controversies,

There

is

no need to

dilate

on

which are active enough to-day.^

The Reformers
and established
nations.
still

of the sixteenth century, emulating the

heretics of the thirteenth, took


its

up the

thesis of Vigilantius

supremacy among the Protestant

On

the other hand, prayers for the dead are

reverently offered in Catholic countries, as well as

in the

Orthodox Greek Church and among the Jews.The pagans, then, prayed to the dead, and the
In the eyes of the former, the
least,

Christians for the dead.

dead were gods

at the

demigods or heroes

in the

eyes of the latter, they were placed in so precarious and


perilous a situation as to stand in need of the prayers

which the survivors addressed

to
it

God

for their salvation,

and

of the

good works by which

was hoped

to conciliate

the divine clemency.

prayed

for.

Even the most virtuous must be Thus, more than fifteen years after the
St.

death of his sainted mother Monica,


his

Augustine, on

own
So

admission, was
striking
is

still

praying for her.^

a
well

contrast

between
the

two

religious

conceptions

worth

historian's

attention.

There

is

no reason why we should allow the theologians

^ As far as the fourth and fifth centuries are concerned, a host of quotations will be found in M. Isr. Levi's article on the Commemoration of Souls [Revue des Etudes juives, 1894, vol. xxix. pp. 55, 56). - That the custom is independent of the belief in Purgatory is proved by the fact that the Orthodox Greeks, who deny the existence of Purgatory, nevertheless pray for the dead (cf. Revue anglo-vomaine,
'
'

For the ' Commemoration of the Dead among the Jews 1895, p. 156). of the Middle Ages, see M. Levi's study quoted above [Revue, &-.,
'

1894, vol. xxix. pp. 44 sqq.). ^ St. Augustine, Confess, ix. 13.

no
a
different

CULTS, MYTHS,
of

AND RELIGIONS

monopoly

such problems
theirs.
:

our
sets

task

is

essentially

from

Theology
is

out to assail or
dis-

defend an opinion
entangling the

history

concerned only with

origins of that opinion,

and

starts,

not

from doctrinal prepossessions, but from the conviction


that

the genesis

of ideas,

like

the genesis of matter,

obeys the law of evolution, and that the intellectual,


like the physical,

world

is

governed by the principle of

continuity.

To begin
the Old
Gospels,

with,

we have

the incontestable fact, recog-

nised as early as the year 200

by

Tertullian, that neither

Law

nor the New, neither the Bible nor the


or

prescribe

mention prayers

for

the

dead.

The accounts
If

of the death of Lazarus,

even those of the

death of Jesus himself,


the holy

make no

allusion to the custom.


it

women
'

visited the sepulchre,

was

to carry

perfumes,^ not to pray.

According to Matthew,^ they

came simply
fact,

to

see

the sepulchre.'

As a matter
;

of

the controversialists are at one on this point


is

the

only subject as to which opinions differ

the origin

and authority
Tertullian.

of the tradition pressed into service

by

Bossuet,

whose

discussions

with

the

Protestant

divines brought

him more than once

to the question of

prayers for the dead,


Catholic apologist.

may

be taken as a type of the

In spite of the silence of the Old

Testament

unbroken
the

except in a single instance

and

of the Gospels,

he goes to the oldest strata of the Jewish


origin
of
this

religion

for

custom which was so

quickly and so generally accepted.^

Two
'

Protestants,
xxiv.
i
;

MM.
xvi.

de
i.

la

Roque and
-

Blondel,
xxviii.

had

Luke

Mark

Matthew
viii. p.

10.

Bossuet, Defense de la tiadition, ed. 1S46, vol.

301.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


asserted that prayers for the dead were

iii
to the

unknown

Jews before the time of Rabbi Akiba, who hved in the and that the Christians borrowed reign of Hadrian
;

them, not from the Jews, but from the Sibylhne Books,
forged

by an impostor
firstly,

in the reign of

Antoninus Pius.

Bossuet answers,

that there

is

nothing in Akiba's
;

words

to indicate that prayers for the

dead were a novelty


is

and, secondly, that mention of them


Gospels, in the second

found, before the

book

of Maccabees.

We

must pause

for

an instant to consider these two


their exact significance

pieces of evidence

and determine

and date.

The following is the tradition with regard to Akiba, by Bossuet from a Latin translation i One day, Rabbi Akiba, while walking, met a man laden with wood and the burden was so heavy that it exceeded the load Rabbi Akiba asked him if he were of an ass or a horse.
as given
'
:

man or a ghost the other answered that he was a man who had died some time ago, and that he was obliged
a
;

every day to carry a similar load in Purgatory,- where

he was burning on account of the sins which he had

The Rabbi inquired if he had any what was his wife's name, and where they lived. When the ghost had answered all these questions, Rabbi Akiba sought out the son of the dead man and taught him the prayer beginning with the word Kadisch (that is to say, saint) which is to be found
committed
left

in this world.

not

children,

Bossuet quotes La Gcmara du Talmud, au traite Calla.' The is exact cf. Hamburger, Real-Encyklop. fiiy Talmud, art. Kaddisch,' p. 607. The treatise, however, is not a part of the Talmud. For the passages of the Talmudists which imply the idea of an intercession by the living in favour of the dead, I refer the reader to the article of M. Isr. Levi, quoted above. - M. Isr. Levi tells me that this expression is not in the Hebrew.

'

reference
'

112

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
him that
if

in the ritual of the Jews, promising

his father
it

should be delivered from Purgatory


After a while, the dead

he recited

every

dream day. to Rabbi Akiba, thanked him, and told him that by this means he had been freed from Purgatory and was now
in a

man appeared

in

the Garden of Eden, which

(adds Bossuet)

is

the

earthly Paradise where, according to Jewish belief, the


souls of the blessed have their residence.'
i

Bossuet was right in maintaining that this story does


not credit Akiba with the institution of prayers for the
dead, but simply with the employment of one particular

prayer which was efficacious for the deliverance of souls.

But Bossuet was wrong in omitting to inform us that the legend requisitioned by him dates from the Middle Ages only, and that no hint of it is discoverable in any of the earlier and more authoritative accounts of Akiba in our He was equally wrong in claiming that possession.
prayers for the dead
'

were constantly in use, from time

immemorial, in
gratuitous,
to refute
it.

all

synagogues.'
silence of the

The

assertion

is

perfectly
is

and the

Old Testament

enough
on a

We now
solitary

come

to the other argument, based


in

passage

the second book of

Maccabees.
it

This book was rejected from the Jewish canon, and

was only with difficulty that the Christian Church finally


secured
of
its

inclusion.
it

About the year 350 the Council


;

Laodicea threw

out

while, in 397, the third Council

of Carthage accepted

it.

In 494 the Council of Rome,

under Pope

Gelasius, admitted the first


;

two books

of

Maccabees into the canon

but the Protestant Bibles


'

have excluded them to this day.


'

It is useless to object,'

Bossuet, op. land. vol.

xii.

pp. 221-222.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


says Bossuct,
sufficient for
'

113
it

that the book


it

is

non-canonical

is

our purpose that

should be not only older


1

than

Akiba but older than the Gospels themselves.'


is

The remark

just

but

it

might be as well to weigh the


if

authority of the work and consider

the doctrine

it

presents can pass, as Bossuet seems to believe, for that


of the whole pre-Christian Synagogue.

Herr Niese,
critics,

in

opposition

to

a few over-sceptical

seems to have demonstrated that the second book

of Maccabees, the historical value of

which
It

is

not to be

despised, dates from the year 124 B.C.

must have

been composed in Egypt by a Jew belonging to the sect


of the Pharisees.-

a work in

Jason of
least

The author professes to summarise five books, by another hellenised African Jew, This latter must have written at Cyrene.'^
after the time
(ca.
;

twenty years

175-160

B.C.)

of

the events which he chronicles


liberal
is

and
old,

his

version

already contains a
the work
at a

admixture of

fable.
it

But,

if

we

possess
late

comparatively
it

was only

distinctly

period that

began to exercise
first

any

influence on Jewish thought.


it, is

The

writer

who

appears acquainted with

the Egyptian

Jew

Philo,

who was

about

thirty

years of age at

the

time of

the birth of Jesus.

Josephus, born in the year 37 a.d.,


it

has no knowledge of a single quotation

(at least, directly)


it

nor

is

there

from

in the Gospels, the Acts, or


first

the genuine Epistles.


in Christian

The
is

allusion
in

to the

book
of

literature
is

found

the Epistle to the

Hebrews, which
'

universally recognised as the

work

Bossuet, Oeuvves, ed. 1846, vol. viii. p. 301. B. Niese, Kritik der beiden Makkabderbiicher, Berlin, 1900 (extr.

fr,

Hermes, vol. xxxv. pp. 268, 453). ^ 2 Mace. ii. cf. ii. 26, 28. 23
;
*

Schijrer, Gesch. des jiidischen Volkes, vol.

ii.

p. 740.
I

114

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
back to Egypt

a Paulinist of Alexandria living about the year 80 a.d.i

AH
in

this evidence, let us observe, takes us

general,

and

Alexandria

in

particular.

We

shall

hardly do wrong, then, to assume that the dogmatic parts


of

the

little

work

in question reflect

not so

much

the

general opinion of Judaism as that of a limited Judseo-

Alexandrine clique.

The second book of Maccabees of Judas, of theirs

relates that the soldiers of a

on stripping the corpses

few companions

who had

fallen in

an engagement with Gorgias,

the governor of Idumea, found a

number

of

amulets

under their tunics.

As

these articles
'

were forbidden by
this transgression

the Jewish Law, Judas

prayed that

might be blotted

out,'

and sent 2000 drachms


'

of silver

to Jerusalem as a sin-offering.

Wherein,' comments our

author,

'

he did very well and honestly in that he was


:

mindful of the resurrection


that they that

for

if

he had not hoped


it

were slain should have risen again,


dead.'
it is

had been superfluous and vain to pray for the This commentary is evidently prejudiced
:

the

work
that

of a

man, himself a believer


Maccabseus
is

in the resurrection

and
His

the efficacy of prayers for the dead,

who

desires to prove

Judas

held

the

same views.

argument, however,

worthless. ^

Among

all

peoples

a violation of religious law on the part of individuals has been regarded as a danger to the community at large

a
for
'

crime requiring special expiation or purification.

Judas begs the Almighty to pardon a few Jewish soldiers

an act

of idolatry,

and

offers a sacrifice in order to


1S95, p. 11
;

G. Kriiger, Gesch. der


43.

altchyistl. Literatiir,

A. Harnack,

Die Chronologie, 1897, - 2 Maccabees xii.


^

p. 479.

This opinion

is

shared by M. Israel Levi, Revue des iLtudes juives,

1894, vol. xxix.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


avert the divine wrath h'oin his
soldiers in another

115

army

the late of his

world does not concern him.

The

story,

then, so far from proving


it

what the epitomator


:

thought

proved, implies the exact contrary


B.C.,

that in

the Palestine of 170

the period of Judas Maccabieus,

there was no belief either in the resurrection or in the


efficacy of

prayers for the dead.

Had

those doctrines

been current coin at the time, our anonymous author

would never have been reduced

to the absurd induction

by which he hoped
and
to place

at once to establish their antiquity

them under distinguished patronage. The action of Judas,' Bossuet missed the point.
'

he remarks,

'

shows that even

in those

days the Jews

believed in the feasibility of expiation and sacrifice for

the dead.'

Many commentators have

fallen into

the

same

snare, since Origen first insisted

on the passage as

supporting the doctrine of intercession.


conclusion that can be
of the

The only
is

valid

drawn from

it

that the Jews

Maccabsean period did not

yet believe in the

saving

grace of prayer for the dead, but that, by the time of the

epitomator
believe in
it,

(ca.

120

B.C.),

a sect

had

arisen

which did

though not without incurring the opposition


This must have been a sect of
the
Pharisees,

of its contemporaries.

Pharisees,

for

according

to

Josephus,

admitted the resurrection, while the Sadducees denied


it.3

The

earliest

Biblical

text,

where the idea of

re-

surrection
Daniel,'

finds clear expression, occurs in the


it is

book

of

which

now

agreed dates from the Maccabaean


It
is

period

about
'

165 B.C.

obvious that the theory


of ground,

must have gained a

certain

amount

and have

Bossuet, ed. 1S4G, vol.

viii. p.
ii.

301.

Cf. Schiirer, op. laud. vol.

p. 4O0.

Daniel

xii.

cf.

Schiirer, ibid.

ii6

CULTS, MYTHS.
definite

AND RELIGIONS
men
could realise the

assumed

shape,

before

duties entailed on the living


or later the dead
of

by the

certainty that sooner

must appear before the judgment-seat


dead was introduced,
in the

God.

In short, everything tends to prove that the


of praying for the

custom
first

century before our era, in certain Jewish communities,

particularly in those of Egypt, to one of which the writer


of the

second book of Maccabees belonged.

It

had not

yet been adopted by the Palestine which listened to the


teaching of Jesus

who never speaks of


life

it,

although very

positive on the subject of a future


of souls according to their merits.
it left its

and the judgment


in

Even

Egypt, where

mark, the resistance and doubt must have been


is

great .^

There

nothing to prove that in Akiba's time,


the doctrine had penetrated into the
;

about 130
prevent

A.D.,

ritual of the

synagogues

but neither
it.

is

there anything

to

our admitting

About that date the

belief

was doubtless borrowed by the growing Christian


as an established usage.
right in holding that the

communities, so that Tertullian, in the year 200, could

speak of

it

Thus Bossuet was

custom

of praying for the dead had been transmitted by the

Synagogue to the Church,


deceived on the score of
its

though he was strangely


its

antiquity and
is

universality

among the Jews.


It

But the question

only half solved.

remains to be seen

how

the idea of an intercession by

the living for the dead penetrated into the Jewish thought
In the fourth book of Esdras, which probably dates from the year 97 A.D. and is the work of an Alexandrine Jew, the doctrine of interI,ord,' cession is mentioned as an ill-defined theological novelty. says Esdras to the angel, at the Day of Judgment shall the just be
'
'

'

And able to intercede for the unjust in the eyes of the Most High ? the Angel answers, There shall be none who shall cast his burden on for every man shall suffer what he hath merited and shall his fellow be held accountable for his own doings.'
'
' :

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


Christian Churches previous to the Reformation.

117

of the first century before our era, thence to spread into


all

As the second book of Maccabees is the work of an Alexandrine Jew, and the first two authors who quote
from
it

are also Alexandrine Jews,


first

it

is

only natural

that our

glance should turn to Egypt

not the old


the

Egypt

of the Pharaohs, coeval with

Abraham, but the


influenced

hellenised

Egypt

which sheltered
Alexandria.

and

Hebrew colony
of

in

Relative to our subject

we have

a most important text

Diodorus Siculus, who visited Egypt about the year


B.c.^

50
is

He

says

'
:

When
to give

the chest containing the dead


call

put upon the boat, and the survivors

on

the nether

gods and beseech them


set

him

ingress into the mansions


assent,
life

aside for the pious, the

crowd cry

and pray
in

likewise that the deceased

may

enjoy eternal

Hades
be
the
of

in the congregation of the good.'

This passage

may

compared with
Egyptian
ritual

certain

prayers,

forming part

and designed

to assist the

dead
*

in his
is

progress to the habitation of the blessed.-

It

the

solemn moment,' writes Maspero,


leaving the towTi where he
to

'

when

the dead man,

had

lived, begins his

journey

The multitudes assembled on the " May you reach banks salute him with good wishes In peace, in peace to in peace the West of Thebes Go down in peace to Abydos, toward the Abydos Western Sea " s Even if the Egyptian texts so
another world.
:

'

far,

at

least,

as

my

knowledge goes

offer

no exact

equivalent to the prayer quoted

not

the

faintest

by Diodorus, there is reason why we should impugn the


i.

'

Diodorus Siculus,

gr.

'

Revillout, Revue cgypiologique, 1885, p. 42. Maspero, Lectures historiques, p. 149.

ii8

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
who was
also

statement of an historian
Moreover, the statement
of
is

an eye-witness
series

borne out by a whole

Greek epitaphs from Egypt, dating from the imperial


There we find a recurrence of formulae
:

epoch, but pagan.

such as the following


his

'

Serapis, grant

him victory over


the dead

enemies,'

enemies,
his

that

is,

whom
'

man

might encounter on
'

journey to the realms of


Serapis.
^

bliss,

give

him good welcome, Lord

M. Revillout,

a specialist on these texts, has very justly remarked that,


in the Christian epitaphs of

Egypt, prayer

for the

dead

on the part

of the survivors
in
if

is

a far more frequent phenoof

menon than
countries

the

contemporary epitaphs

other

as

the Christians of the Nile valley had, like

the Jews, or through the Jews, absorbed the influence of

native religious tradition.

The same

scholar, however,
:

appears to be mistaken when he writes


the dead
. . .

'

Prayers for

only

make

their appearance

among the

Jews

at the time of their great struggle with the Syrian

kings under the Maccabees

and then, perhaps, owing to


forget that at this

Egyptian influence.

We

must not

period the Ptolemies were certainly secret supporters


of

Jews against the Seleucidse, precisely as the Pharaohs had once been their mainstay against the
the

Assyrian satraps.'
in question did not

Personally, I believe that the prayers

come

into

vogue amongst the Jews


to

until

some

fifty

years after the Maccabees, and that the

influence exercised

by Egypt was simply due

the

existence of a large Jewish colony in that country.


policy of the Lagidae counted for nothing.

The

At the time
were a

of Christ's teaching, Philo estimated that there

million

Jews

in
1

Egypt, against 180,000

in Asia

Minor

Corpus inscr. grace. 4710, 4712b. Revue egyptologique, 1885, p. 45.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


and 8000 at
It is

119

Rome

and he

tells

us that at Alexandria

they occupied two out of the

five quarters of the town.'

not surprising that so huge an agglomeration should

have developed a centrifugal tendency, and that its ideas tinctured as they were by Graeco-Roman speculation

should have spread not

onl}^ into

Syria but into other

parts of the Hellenic world.


It

seems to
a

me
to\vn

there

is

a trace of this propaganda


relations
site of

at

Corinth,

whose commercial
Here
St.

with

Alexandria were constant, and also the


portant Jewish colony.

an imrite of

Paul found the

Baptism

for the

Dead, in which a living proxy baptised

himself in order to assure the eternal salvation of a friend

who had passed away unbaptised


cession belonging to the
in

species of inter-

same order
Maccabees.

as that referred to

the second

book

of

This baptism,

it

must be observed, was not the Christian baptism but Greeks who had been the baptism of the Proselytes converted to Judaism and thus paved the way for the
"

formation of Christian communities.

From

all

these data

we may take
in

it

that the origin of


as Christianity
in the Hellenic

prayer for the dead was Egyptian.

was developed not

so

much

But Egypt as

world, w^e are justified in asking whether she

may

not

even there have found certain kindred ideas favourable


to the grow'th
of

of her nascent doctrine

on the

efficacy

prayer for the dead.


'

Philo, in Flacc. 6

and

8.

Cf.

Th. Reinach,

art.

'

Judaea/ in Saglio's

Dictionnaire des antiqiiites, p. 622. - I Cor. XV. 29.


*

Schiirer, op. laud. vol.

ii.

p. 369.

detailed discussion of

Baptism

for the

Dead would

lead

us

too far. I shall only point out that Epiphanes ascribes the practice (which, by the way, St. Paul does not condemn) to the Cerinthians. Now, Cerinthus seems to have been an Egyptian Jew.

120

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
classical antiquity

We said at the beginning that


eyes, the

knew
side

nothing of these prayers, because, in Greek and

Roman
by

dead

man became

a god.

Still,

side

with this primitive idea, there was another of a

much

more modern
with their

The dead were judged in accordance conduct in this life some were sent incontinent
cast.
;

to the Elysian Fields, the

abode of the blessed


In the sixth book

others
of the

were hurled into Tartarus.

Aeneid we have even a reference to Purgatory and Limbo,


conceptions which have passed into Christian eschatology

and
of

still

play an important part in

it.

Between

this point

view and that which Fustel found underlying the

religions of Greece

and Rome, there

is

obviously an ab-

solute incompatibihty.

Instead of being a god or demi-

god, the dead

man

is

a prisoner at the bar, threatened


;

with a shorter or longer term of punishment


either justify himself or be purified

and he must

by

suffering before

he can be admitted into the circle of the elect.

Even

there he will only be a privileged person, not a god,

something immeasurably different from the Aeschylean

Agamemnon
It is

to

whom

Electra prays, not merely for the


itself.

success of her plans, but for virtue

remarkable that the same dualism of


in

beliefs

has

been observed
countries,

Egypt,

Italy,

and Gaul.
dead

In these three
is

as

in

Greece,

the

man

sometimes

supposed to inhabit his tomb, where

he receives

homage

and even dispenses


and danger.
at

oracles

but sometimes he migrates

to a far-off land, at the risk of a

voyage beset with fatigue

Of these two conceptions, the first

in

Greece,

any

rate

appears

to be

that of the official religion,

the second that of the popular religion.

In the course of

time the

official religion

succumbs under the double assault


:

of science

and conscience

in

revenge the popular religion,

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


which
the
is

121

not necessarily the more recent, but


of

is

simply
itself

creed

the lower classes, develops, dresses

in philosophic or

moral formulae, and tends to exercise

undivided sovereignty over those souls which have not


yet detached themselves from
all religion.

In Greece and Southern Italy the popular religion

was

called Orphism.

In the sixth century B.C.


;

it

found
a deep
it

a legislator in Pythagoras

in the fourth
;

it left

impress on Platonic thought


inspired Virgil,

at the time of Christ


'

who

in the fourth

Eclogue

'

and the sixth

book

of the

Aeneid made himself the interpreter of Mes-

sianism and Orphic eschatology.

century later

it

began to exercise

its

influence

on Christian thought, and


figures

that without any attempt at concealment on the part of


the early Christians.

The poet Orpheus


All

as

precursor of Jesus
paintings
of

on the Christian sarcophagi and


catacombs. 1
the

in the

the

mysticism

of
of

primitive Christianity, which goes under the

name

Gnosticism,

is

paganism was

filled

imbued with Orphic elements.- Dying with it. Even in the third century

the emperor Alexander Severus, a pious eclectic, gathered

together in his imperial oratory the images of Orpheus,

Apollonius of Tyana, and Jesus.

Now

there
is

is

every reason to suppose

though
We

our

information

distressingly scanty

that popular Orphism


have

recognised prayer and sacrifice for the dead.

two texts on the


monies by which
faults

subject, one

from Plato, and the other

from an anonymous Orphic poet.

Both

relate to cere-

men
of

believed
their

it

possible to
:

redeem the
however,

or

crimes

ancestors

both,

Cf. A.

Heussner, Die altchristlichen Orpheusdarstellungen, Cassel,

1893.
-

Dieterich, Nekyia, Leipzig, 1893, P- 172

and passim.

122

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
it

are open to differences of opinion, ^ and


to insist

seems useless

upon them

here.

What

to

my

mind

is

more
is

conclusive as regards the problem under discussion

the fact that Herodotus and Diodorus have remarked the analogy between the Orphic, Pythagorean, and

Egyptian doctrines
stress

upon the indebtedness


of the
life
'

and that Diodorus lays especial of Orpheus to Egypt for


to

his

theories

come.^

'

According to the
his

Egyptians,' he writes,
travels the ceremonies
rites

Orpheus brought back from

and the more

part of the mystical

celebrated in remembrance of the wanderings of


^

Ceres, as well as the myths touching the infernal regions.'

When an

ancient

historian

disposes

of

the analogies

between Orphism and Egyptian theology by assuming a


journey undertaken by Orpheus to Egypt, no importance

need be attached to

his explanation.

But the case


than we the

is

otherwise with the analogies themselves, attested as they


are

by men who knew

infinitely better

rites

and doctrines under comparison. We shall admit, then, not an Egyptian influence upon primitive Orphism which is possible but non-proven but a close similarity

between the Orphic and the Egyptian


of considerable

rites.

On

one point

importance we have been able for a few


In

years past to control and verify this resemblance.


several
B.C.,

and discovered

tombs dating from the third and second centuries in Southern Italy and Crete, frag-

ments have been found of a little Orphic poem engraved on golden tablets, which was designed to guide the dead on his journey beyond the tomb, and to forewarn him of
Orphica, ed. Abel, p. 237. I have discussed Plato, pp. 364 E-365 A these passages in the Revue de Philologie, 1899, p. 228, in answer to
1
;

the doubts expressed by M. Tannery, - Herod, ii. 81 Diod. i. 92.


;

ibid. p. 126.
'

Diod.

i.

96.

ORIGIN OF PRAYERS FOR THE DEAD


the supernatural dangers that overhung him.'
for the greater sobriety of

123

Allowing

Greek thought,
'

this guide is

the exact equivalent of the

Book

of the Dead,' extracts

from which were placed

in

Egyptian tombs, with the

selfsame object of protecting the dead waj'farer against the perils besetting his pilgrimage to the Better Land.-

Our

conclusion, then, seems justified

that the idea

of pra}Tr

and

sacrifice for the

dead was Egyptian and

Orphic both. From Egypt it penetrated into the Jewish community of Alexandria, and thence into the vast region dominated by Alexandrian commerce through Orphism it spread into Greece, Asia Minor, and Italy. The soil was well prepared by a double ploughing for the spiritual
;

revolution,

which,

in

place

of

the deified dead,

sub-

stituted a creature trembling at thought of his Judge,

and

transformed the prayer addressed to the departed into


the petition, which
still

goes

up

to

God, that

He would

give the soul His peace.


*

hellen.
-

Inscriptiones graecae Jiah'ae, nos. 638, 641, 642 1893, P- 121.

Bull, de Corresp.

The

parallelism

was

first

pointed out by M. Dieterich [De hymnis

Orphicis, Marburg, 1891, p. 41), and has been ingeniously developed by M. Foucart in his first monograph on the mysteries of Eleusis (Paris,
1895)-

CHAPTER

VIII
1

ART AND MAGIC

At

the present day

we

are acquainted with

some ten

caves

mostly in Perigord and the neighbourhood of

the Pyrenees
sculptures
historic art

the

walls of which are decorated with

and

paintings.-

These monuments of pre-

form a welcome supplement to the engravings


figures in relief

on stone, horn, and bone, and the


relief

and
of

full

which were discovered, during the second half


century,
in

of

the nineteenth

the

cave-dwellings
it

the

Reindeer Age.
said, are also

Most
found

of these cave-dwellings,

may be

in Perigord

and round the Pyrenees,

a district which, in addition, has furnished specimens of


rock sculpture and painting.
I outlined the leading ideas L'Anthropologie, 1903, pp. 257-266. an article published in the Chronique des arts, Feb. 7, 1903, and reprinted in the Revue archiologique, March-April of the same
'

of this paper in

In Maj', at a meeting of the Academic des Inscriptions, Dr. Capitan made some remarks on totemism and magic in their relations He did so, however, with reference to my to the cave-paintings. and in the course of the article, which I had brought to his notice Certain newspapers the sitting I enlarged on some of its conclusions. reported the facts in such a Petit Temps of May 20, for instance fashion that it might easily be imagined I was here reproducing Dr.
year, p. 290.
;

Capitan's ideas,
myself.
"

which I am sure he would regret even more than hope the present note will avert any misunderstanding.
v.

For a summary of these discoveries,


;

L'Anthropologie, 1901,

p.

671

1902, p. 348.

124

ART AND MAGIC


There
is

125
of

no complete catalogue

these different
:

manifestations of the early artistic spirit

M. Piette's
is

work, which has involved considerable expense,

to

include the most important, but has not yet been given
to the public. 1

of these cave drawings

At the lowest estimate, there must be 150 and sculptures, each treating a

recognised theme, usually from the animal world.


lighten the task of the student,
I

To

have had reproductions


of all the original

made

at the

Musee de Saint-Germain

drawings and casts in the possession of the institute,


omitting only those in M. Piette's collection.
similes

The

fac-

most ably executed by M. Champion have been


classified in three large cases,

arranged and
in the first

now on
first

view,
is

room

of the
it

Museum.

The

collection

of

distinct interest, as

is

now

possible for the

time

to appreciate

and compare a large number

of designs,

carved either on the surface of long bones or


so-called
'

on the
of cave-

staffs of office.'
I

As the publication
to
cases,

pictures

advances,

propose

place

photographic
will

reproductions of

on the walls

of

them in other the same room.

which

be hung

Both the

large

and the small

pictures belong to the


fact
is

same civilisation and the same period. The by the presence, in each series, of the
for instance, the

proved

characteristic
;

animals of the second phase of the quaternary epoch

mammoth,

reindeer,

and European

bison.

Moreover, so striking are the analogies and so marked


the family resemblance between the rock designs and
those on the smaller objects, that no archaeologist, however ignorant of palaeontology, would hesitate to class

them

in the

same group,
'

or in

two contemporary and

related groups.
In 1904.


AND RELIGIONS
use a
of
list,

126

CULTS, MYTHS,
In drawing up for

my own

necessarily
art,
I

incomplete, of the

was struck by two


observed before

known remains points. The

quaternary

first

has often been

that subjects borrowed from the animal


a great majority.

kingdom are
novel

in

The second seems


feed.

that the animals represented are exclusively those


tribes of hunters

upon which
other

and fishermen
animals

In
for

words,

only

desirable

were taken

models.

The

undesirable,

and unrepresented,
as the lion
different

species
tiger

included the great felines

such
am

and

the hyena, the jackal, the wolf,


serpents,
in

varieties

of

and

so forth.

not aware of a single case

which one

of these latter animals has


fclis spclcea of

been represented
is

for the

supposed

Bruniquel

probably a

badly drawn bull or cow,i and the serpents of the Madelaine3

and Montgaudier

"

are

enormous

eels.*

It

may

be taken, therefore, as a general rule that the hunters of


the Reindeer

Age never depicted carnivorous


certain that they

animals,
;

which were dangerous neighbours and scarcely edible

and yet

it

is

knew them,

feared them,
Birds,

and were famiHar with them both dead and ahve.


also, are of rare

occurrence in the group of pictures in


fact,

question

mention the

but can see no explanation.

'

thropologic, 1903, p. 145.


^ ^
*

See the excellent engraving published by M. Cartailhac in L' AnThe hind-quarters are distinctly bovine. S. Reinach, Alluvions et Cavernes, fig. go, p. 228.
Ibid.
fig.

135, p. 266.

In objection to this M. Piette produces a few drawings of serpents {L' Anthropologic, 1904, p. 174), together with a carving which he takes to represent a wolf. But the wolf is very doubtful, and the serpents might belong to an edible species. Besides, M. Piette himself acknowledges that quaternary man almost invariably limited his artistic efforts to animals which he could eat.

M. Piette writes {loc. laud. p. 175) They rarely drew birds, and yet the bones found prove they ate them, ... so that it is not easy to see a satisfactory reason for the abstention.'
'"
' :

ART AND MAGIC


It is

127

not surprising, however, that the hippopotamus and


:

rhinoceros are absent

for the first

of these

was un-

doubtedly already extinct in France, and the second


appears to have been far from common.

Now,

if

among two hundred


is

drawings, carvings, and

paintings of animals there

not one solitary specimen

of a carnivorous creature, the omission cannot be ascribed

to accident.

This granted,
that,

we

are forced to an important

conclusion

when

the cave-dweller drew or carved

or painted, he had something in view above and beyond

the simple desire to while


his

away

his

time or to impress

companions by an exhibition

of his

own

dexterity.

The

severely restricted choice of subject, which

cramped
for

his artistic activity, implies a

more recondite cause

that activity

than has hitherto been supposed.

The

primitive draughtsman was no idle dreamer outlining a


familiar,

chance-suggested

silhouette,

with

no graver
did

motive than the inspiration of the moment, but a worker

who knew both what he was doing and why he


tastes of a

it.

Ethnography has long familiarised us with the

artistic

number
in the

of present-day tribes,

still

in the

savage

or barbarous stage.

Engraving and sculpture on bones


extreme northern latitudes, especially

are

common

among
of

the Eskimos,

who have no knowledge, however,


on
walls
is

wall-painting.

Engraving

general

in

Africa

most of

all in

the Saharan region and


paint on rocks.

Bushmen, who

also

among the The Austrahan,

while fond of painting on stone or wood, has no notion


of engraving or sculpture.-

Unlike the modern savage,

M. Piette has published two rhinoceros heads (Tich. de Gourdan), Is the determination of this engraved on stalagmite {ibid. p. 147).
'

species certain
-

?
I' cut,

See E. Grosse, Les debuts de

French translation, pp. 124

sqq.

128

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
or, at least,

the troglodyte of South-West France seems to have been

both painter and sculptor

the painting and

carving tribes must have lived at the same time and in the

same

place.

But our only hope


is

of discovering

why the

troglodyte painted and carved,

to seek the information

from the primitive peoples

of to-day,

whose conditions
been put

have been ethnologically ascertained.

As a matter

of fact, the question has often

without ehciting any answer of interest.


century savage, however primitive he
long evolution behind

The twentiethappear, has a

may

him

his ancestors

have bequeathed
of

him a legacy

of tradition,

which he observes, and


Consequently,

custom, to which he conforms, though he


neither one nor the other.

may understand
when
a savage

answers that he carves or paints to amuse himself, or


because his forefathers did
so, or for

no reason at

all,

it

merely proves that,

in his case, artistic activity

no longer

exists except as a survival or a pastime.

But, should

other savages give a more definite answer, that answer


deserves our preference

on

the one condition that

it

conforms to certain general ideas


large.

common

to

mankind

at

Of those
following
:

ideas,

few are more widely diffused than the


of

The representation

an object, animate or
;

inanimate, gives a hold over that object

in other words,

the maker or owner of an effigy


original.

is

able to influence the


of course, magical,

This hold or influence

is,

and derives from a time-honoured


in the

superstition,

older

than religions and theogonies, but so profoundly rooted

human mind
religions

that

it

has held
spite
of

its

own

side

by

side

with

often

in

them

and

seems

destined to survive them,

natural corollary to the idea that like gives a hold

ART AND MAGIC


on
like inspires

129

man
is

with a fear of being represented in


almost ubiquitous,
to take
it

effigy.

That

fear

and

in

some
for-

cases religion has

had

into account

by

bidding the reproduction of the


painting or sculpture.

human form

in either

The magic process


or piercing
is

of cnvoutcmcnt,

which was
carried out

still

flourishing in the Middle Ages,

and was

by breaking

an image

in order to

harm

or

kill

the original,

only one example

among

hundred typifying the


exists a

effects

of this belief that

there

network

of invisible threads connecting things

or beings with their effigies.^


If primitive

man's inveterate distrust


art,

of portraiture

has retarded the progress of


effectively furthered

that progress has been

by the

desire of attracting or in-

fluencing things

and beings.

plastic arts alone.

Nor is this true of the Numerous examples are known of

pantomimic or dramatic representations, intended to provoke similar movements or phenomena in the animate
or inanimate world.

We
many

need only

recall the practice,

prevalent

among

so

nations, of obtaining rain

by

pouring water on the ground, or of unloosing the storm

by

counterfeiting the sound of thunder.


of imitative
'

The Australians

have numbers

animal dances,' the best

known being

the kangaroo dance, in which the actors


fidelity.

copy the kangaroo's motions with remarkable


All this, say some,
is

readily accounted for


;

by the savage's
others consider

highly developed instinct for mimicry


the rite as a

means

of initiating the novice into the

man-

ners and customs of an animal which the


'

Australian

See the examples collected by Hirn, Origins of Art, p. 287, and the bibliography which he quotes. The custom of executing absent criminals in effigy still survived in medieval Perigord (Tarde, lUudes
penales, p. 241).
-

See E. Grosse, Les debuts de

I'art,

French edition,
r.

p. 165.

130

CULTS, MYTHS,
if

AND RELIGIONS
Neither explanation
it

must hunt,
is

he

is

to hve.

is

valid

the object of the kangaroo dance,


to

is

now

recognised,

endow the dancers with


Here, the power

a magical power over the

kangaroo.!

is

acquired by pantomime
is

elsewhere, the agency preferred


So,

sculpture or painting.

among

the Golds of Eastern Siberia, carvings of fish


fish.^

are used as charms to attract

Some exceedingly
same order
of ideas,
of Central Australia

interesting facts, belonging to the

have been noted among the

tribes

by

a pair of most competent observers,

Messrs. Spencer and Gillen.

The

larvse of certain insects,

a great delicacy to the Australian palate, are known under


the

name

of

udnirringita

otherwise,

witchetty grub
feed.

from ndnirringa, the herbs or bushes on which they

When

the clan, whose totem this insect


of intichiuma,
it

is,

performs the

ceremony
of rock

gathers at the foot of a wall

on which great pictures of the witchetty grub are


=5

painted.

The purpose

of the

ceremony

is

to assure,

by

magical means, the multiplication of the animal totem.

The

songs, sung in chorus, are invocations to the insects,


all

beseeching them to come from

points of the horizon


is

and lay a multitude


object of
authors, has
its

of eggs.^

This

the invariable
to the

any intichiuma.
special

Each totem, according


;

ceremony

no two are

identical,

but

all

serve a single end

to

increase the food-supply

by stimulating
which gives
that this

the reproduction of the animal or vegetable


It is well

its name to the tribal totem. new conception of the totemic

known
it

cult

is

due to the

researches of Messrs. Spencer and Gillen, and that

was

almost immediately accepted and developed by Mr. Frazer.


/
'

- Ibid. p. 287. See Y. Hirn, The Origins of Art, p. 285. Spencer and Gillen, The Native Tribes of Central Australia, 1899^

p. 171.

Ibid. p. 172.

ART AND MAGIC


Describing the ceremonies of the

131
clan, the

Emu

same

travellers relate that certain natives let their blood drip

on
the

to a

patch of ground about three yards square until


soaked.

soil is well

As soon

as the blood

is

dry, they

take a quantit}^ of pipe-clay, red and yellow ochre, and


charcoal
;

then, within the blood-reddened area, they


of the

draw a sacred picture


and black
laid.

emu, with

circles of

yellow

to represent the eggs before or after they are


sit

The clansmen

round the picture and sing

in-

chorus,

while the chief, or master of the ceremonies,

explains the details of the drawing. ^


for these rites,

Given the motive

we have here an indisputable example of the magical employment of a painted image to promote the
reproduction of the model.

Before the account of Messrs.

Spencer and Gillen's second expedition had yet appeared,


Mr. Frazer,

who was reading


17,

the proofs, wrote


'
:

to

me

from Cambridge on June


of

1903

I find

a description

some very elaborate totemic


of their first

designs,

drawn on the
ritual.'

ground and forming an integral part of totemic

At the end
several

volume
in

(1899), the authors devote

pages to Australian rock-paintings, several of


colour.-

which they reproduce


large proportion

In their opinion, a

must be

related to

totemic worships,
:

and we learn one


a great

detail of vital significance

that, in

many

instances, the figures are traced

on walls

of rock, in places rigorously

tabooed to women, children,


is

and non-initiated men.


a

This
in

curiously analogous to

phenomenon observed

France

that

the paintings
is

are not at the entrance of the caves, where the light

comparatively strong, but are relegated to the dimmest


recesses,

at

the

end

of

long

and

hardly

accessible

corridors.
'

Ibid. p. 179,

fig.

29.

Ibid. pp.

614

5^.

132

CULTS, MYTHS,
As soon

AND RELIGIONS
MM.

as I gathered from the accounts of

Capitan and Breuil that the designs had been executed

under such conditions,

it

seemed
'

to

me
'

obvious that the

fact at once excluded the

pastime

theory,

and estab-

Hshed beyond doubt the rehgious and mystic character


of the paintings.

Unquestionably, there would be some


for

rashness in

postulating,

the

cave-dwellers

of

the

Reindeer Age, a totemic cult identical with that of the

Aruntas of modern Australia


renounce
it

but, unless
it is

we

are

to

all

attempt at an explanation,
populations

better to seek

among

the hunter-tribes of to-day than


of

among

the

agricultural
I

Gaul

or

historic

France.

Now,

the representation of edible animals, to the total

exclusion of the carnivorous species, would be simply and


satisfactorily

accounted

for,

if

the

troglodytes

were

approximately on the same religious plane as the Aruntas

who were
magic

studied

by

Messrs. Spencer and Gillen.

On

that

hypothesis, the object in view


practices, of the

was the

multiplication,

by

the clan or tribe

game upon which the existence of depended. To this end, ceremonies

limited to the adult males were held in the remotest and

obscurest parts of the cavern

holy
The

ground which the


paintings, perhaps
of

profane were forbidden to tread.

executed by

artificial

light (though
,

no traces

smoke

have been found on the

walls) could only

be visible under

the same conditions unless the habit of living in darkness had developed in the men of that age an acuteness of sight Those paintings were the distinctly superior to ours.^
In 1903 I ventured the suggestion that, by spending a considerable part of their hfetime in caves, the troglodytes might have acquired the faculty of seeing in the dark, in cases where a modern man would be incapable of distinguishing anything [Chroniqiie des Arts, Feb. 7, Certainty, however, is impossible, without data as to the 1903).
'

variability of the visual

power

in

man, and those data

do not

possess.

ART AND MAGIC

133

object of a cult, addressed not to the individual animals

portrayed, but to the whole species, some occult power

over which was supposed to be conferred by the mere


representation of
its

individual members.

If

our cave-

men resembled
rites

the Aruntas in their

way

of thinking, the

which

they celebrated in front of these effigies

must

have been destined to replenish the stock of the elephants, wild bulls, horses, and deer, which constituted their
staple food.

Beyond

this there

was the hope

of decoying

them

into the vicinity of the cave

hope founded on
it

the principle of savage physics, which lays a spirit or an animal can be forced to
fix its

down
its

that

habitation in

the place where a counterfeit presentment of


to be found.

body

is

Mr. Hirn has suggested the

name homoeoThus we

pathic magic for the developments of this doctrine of the

attraction of like to like

similia similibus.^

should gain an absolutely complete explanation of the

absence of carnivorous animals from the cave-paintings.


If

there are

still

country-folk

who

fear to

name

the wolf,

lest

the wolf should come, what must have been the


of

troglodyte's dread

portraying
his

the

ravenous beasts
life

which
life

threatened
the
?

impartially

own

and

the

of

herbivorous

creatures

that

gave

him

sustenance
Is
it

possible that the

same explanation would cover


horn, and bone,
in the

the animal pictures


or carved in high

engraved on stone,
which
?

relief-

have been found

caverns of the Reindeer Age obscure Bernardin

One

isolated scholar

the

proposed, about the year 1876, to assume a connection between these figures and those of
clans with totemic cults
;

but his theory woke no echo,

'

Hirn, Origins of Art, p. 282.

134

CULTS, MYTHS,
at the present

AND RELIGIONS
to
it is

and

day no reference

ever seen.^
in

For the most part, modern authorities have agreed

regarding the sculptures and engravings of the Reindeer

Age

as the

products of a genuinely artistic activity,

subserved by qualities of observation and manual dexterity

which the struggle

for existence
It

must have developed

in

primitive mankind.-

has even been claimed that the

cave-dwellers, thanks to their herds of semi-domesticated


reindeer,

must have had both an assured

livelihood

and

a certain

amount
it

of leisure,

without which they would

have found
luxury of

impossible to give
art.

much

time to that
objects

life

The elaborately ornamented

which are called

staffs of office

have been successively

identified as arms, instruments for straightening arrows,

insignia of chieftaincy, parts of reindeer harness, hooks


for
last

fastening

garments,

and
I

hunting

trophies.
;

This

hypothesis was the one

held in i88g

but, as I

who was

In an article of the Revue Savoisienne (Feb. 1876), Bernardin, the conservator of the Musee de Melle in Belgium, compared the genealogical staffs of the Maoris not only with the staffs of office,' The instruments but with the incised reindeer bones and antlers. Could called staffs of office are often marked with regular notches. not these have been intended to recall the chief's genealogy ? On one This looks as side, there is usually the drawing of an animal. though it might be a tribal badge. For instance, we should have a
^
'

'

Belgium, and tribes of the Wild Goat, Ram, and Beaver So, the North American Indians had animalIn 1S78 {l.l. p. 12). figures for the symbols or totems of their tribes Revon alluded to the theory {La Haute-Savoie avant les Remains, p. 13)Before If there has been any other notice of it, it lies outside my ken. coming upon these passages, I had written in the Revue Archeologiqiie (1S99, ii. p. 478), with reference to MM. Girod and Massenat's book

Trout tribe
or

in

Otter, in Savoy.

'

have always insisted on the religious character of t;he and Mortillet's opinion notwithstanding I think we staffs of office are fully justified in crediting the cave-men with a well-developed Perhaps the animal pictures, which bulk so largely in religious sense. their art, are evidence of some form of totemism.' - E. Grosse, Les debuts de I'art, French edition, p. 151.
'

Personallv,

S.

Reinach, Alluvions

et

Cavernes, p. 234.

ART AND MAGIC


had doubts,
there
it

135

added

'
:

It is

impossible to say whether


;

or not they were the object of superstitious practices


is

nothing improbable in the supposition.'

To-day

seems to

me more

than probable.
shall

We do
:

not

know
part, I
is

in all likelihood

we never

know the

part played

by the

staffs of oftice in

firmly believe, they


of these staffs

magic ceremonial some must have played. What

true

must
;

also be true of other drawings

and

sculptured objects

though

it

may

well be that

a few

indistinct or incomplete specimens are


efforts,

simply prentice
the carvings

and were never used

ritually.

Among

on bone collected by M. Piette there are several skinned


animal-heads, which present a very
difficult
artist,

problem.

Did the cave-dweller,


his trade

like

the

modern

work from

a skinless model, with an eye to the better learning of


?

This explanation

is

obviously inadmissible,

and another must be sought.

Now, when the wild horse, killed at a distance from the cave, was brought back by the hunters, it is probable they had already skinned it
perhaps dismembered
it

on

the

spot

where

it

fell

the flayed head was carried


It

home

as a trophy of victory.
of all eyes,

was

this that

became the cynosure

and was

copied on bone or horn, to serve as the charm which should


allure living horses to the cavern.

To

call

that copy a
is

work

of art, in the
:

modern sense

of the term,

a clear

anachronism

the prehistoric sculptor was not concerned

with pleasing, but with evoking.


In
fact,

this idea of a

mystic evocation by drawing

or relief

the

counterpart of invocation by the spoken

word

is

the germ from which the art of the Reindeer

Age was developed.


expression
of

That

art, then,

was

not, as the art


It

of civilised peoples, a luxury or a pastime.

was the

religion,

rude enough but

intensely

136
earnest

CULTS, MYTHS.

AND RELIGIONS
of

religion

built

up

magic ceremonies and


its

looking to a single end, the daily bread of

votaries.
vital to

A
or

drawing or carving of edible animals was as

the success of the huntsman or fisherman as his assegai

barbed harpoon.

Like the Australians of to-day,

these savages did not, and could not, ask

more

of religion

than the satisfaction of their physical cravings.

They
has no

were
gods,

still

in that

phase of evolution where

man

and interposes no higher power between himself


of nature, because

and the operations

he believes that,

within the limit of his

own

needs, he can directly dominate

those operations, and subject


violence or
If

them

to his will either

by

by magic.
it is

the preceding theories are correct,

evident that

the two rival schools of archaeology have been equally in


error

the one school,


of religion

in holding that the


;

cave-men had

no form
to

whatever

the other, in attributing

them a rudimentary sun-worship, with the appropriate symbols and amulets. The intellectual level of the
was too
low either for a theology

troglodyte, to judge from that of the Aruntas,

an essential part of
cult,

all

modern

religions or for an astral


agricultural population.

which

is

suited only to an

sun

is
;

a
^

woman who comes


but they neither
it.

earth

The Aruntas believe that the night by night to rest on the represent it by a circle, nor offer

Though the question is still obscure, it would seem that the most backward primitive peoples look upon the heavenly bodies as animals or men, and only by slow degrees rise to any conception of their nature or their influence upon the world. By a hackneyed figure of speech, we talk of the magic
prayers to
'

Cf.

spencer and Gillen, op. cit. p. 561. Lang, Myth, Ritual, and Religion,

vol.

i.

pp. 122

sq.

ART AND MAGIC


of the

137
In the literal
will of

brush or

chisel, or of art in general.

sense of a mystic constraint exercised

by the

man

upon an alien will or an inanimate object, the phrase is but we have seen that time was no longer admissible when it was rigorously true at least, in the artist's
;

opinion.

We

should be guilty of gross exaggeration,

if

we claimed

that magic was the only source of art, or shut

our eyes to the part played by the instinct of imitation,


the instinct of adornment, and the social necessity of
expressing and communicating thought.
Still,

the dis-

covery of the French and Spanish rock-paintings, which

form a supplement to the sculptures and engravings


found
artistic

in

the caverns, seems to show that the great


of the Reindeer

movement
as
it

Age was intimately

connected with the development of magic, in

much

the

same form

retains

among

the hunting and fishing

tribes of to-day.

CHAPTER IX
THE APOSTLES AMONG THE ANTHROPOPHAGI
In the year
'

of grace 112 Caius Plinius Secimdus, better

known

as Pliny the Younger,

was the Roman governor

of

Bithynia

the

north-western part of Asia Minor.

He

was hardly

installed before his ears

were stunned with

the complaints of

the local cattle-owners and dealers,


for

whose business was affected by the waning demand


sacrificial

animals.

A new religious sect,

called Christians,

had multiplied
losing
their

to such

an extent that the temples were

worshippers

and seemed threatened with


later,

desertion.-

Eighty

years

about

200

a.d.,

the

African priest TertuUian could say that the Christians,

though only dating from yesterday, had already


the world
hesterni

filled

sumus

et

vestra

omnia implcvimus.'^

The
but
'

latter part of the


is

phrase seems to savour of hyperbole,

confirmed by Pliny's testimony.

The dissemina-

Address at the Musee Guimet, Jan. 17, 1904. This ingenious explanation of the motives which led Pliny to occupy himself with the Christians, and to draw Trajan's attention to them, is due, I believe, to Mr. Ramsay. Moor, Marcoman, or Parthian, Tertull. Apol. xxxviii. whatever nation 3'ou will, is it more populous than one which is bounded only by the universe ? We are the children of yesterda}', and already we fill everything, your towns, your islands, your boroughs your municipalities, your comitia, your camps, your tribes the palace, the senate, the forum. We leave you only your temples.'
^
'

'

138

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


tion of Christianity throughout the

139

Roman
of

world was
the second

extraordinarily rapid.

At the beginning

century,

its

adherents were numerous enough to alarm


;

the vested interests of paganism

at the

end

of the
;

century, they believed themselves to be in the majority

another hundred years, and they were masters of the

Empire.

How

was

this

progress achieved

For the second which Christian

half of the second century

texts begin to be

plentiful an
is

a period in

answer of sorts can be


first,

attempted

but with regard to the

and

decisive,

century our ignorance

almost complete.

Christ

had

twelve disciples, called Apostles,

whom

he commanded to

preach his doctrine throughout the world.

Now,
Peter
St.

of these

twelve Apostles there are only two of whose lives we

can give even the barest outline


John.

St.

and

St.

To

these, of course,

we must add

Paul, the

Apostle of the Gentiles, whose calling was subsequent to


the death of Christ, but who, thanks to his

own
all.

Epistles

and the Acts,


of

is

the most familiar figure of

On

the

other hand, what do we

know
of

of

Philip

and Andrew,
five

Matthew and James,


?

Bartholomew and the

others

Nothing, save their ministry and their names.


is

Nor

our ignorance wholly due to the regrettable

fact that the Christian literature of the

second century
Eusebius,

has not come

down

to

us in

its

entirety.

Bishop of Cgesarea, writing about the year 330, with one


of the richest libraries of Asia at his disposal,

knew

little

more than we.


'

At the beginning of the third book of his


'
:

History of the Church,' he remarks

The holy Apostles


through
as our fathers

and

disciples of our Saviour spread themselves

the length and breadth of earth.

Thomas,

have taught

us, received

Parthia for his share,

Andrew

140
Scythia,

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
'
:

and John Asia.' Then, with reference to the missions of Peter and Paul, he adds All this may be found in the third book of Origen's commentary on
Genesis.'

Now

Origen,

the great Christian scholar of


;

Alexandria, lived from 185 to 254

and

if it is

from him

that Eusebius has to borrow what meagre information

he gives, there can be but one reason


other source which appeared to

he knew of no
of belief.

him worthy

Eusebius was a scholar, and therefore resigned himself to his

want

of knowledge.
in fact

But the unschooled and


easily reconciled

lowly

the people,

were not so
;

to this state of acquiescence


Christianity

and

in all countries

where

had gained a foothold during the second


movement.

century a crop of legends sprang up to account for the


local origins of the

natural enough rivalry


:

spurred the Churches to claim illustrious founders

and

what founders more illustrious than those Apostles who had received the teachings of Christ direct from the sacred
lips
?

But the Acts

of the Apostles,

which form the sequel

to our Gospels, are practically confined to the doings of


St.

Paul and

St.

Peter

the devout, therefore, composed

others in which justice was done to the rest of the Twelve.

In the absence of

all

authentic evidence, the imagination


result

had

free play

and the

was a

sort of competition in
of these
all
;

the miraculous.

The Church watched the growth


which was

narratives with a certain mistrust,

the

greater because their doctrine was often dubious


sect,

every

and sects were

many from

the very infancy of

Christianity,

had

its

own

pious literature of Gospels, Acts,

and

Epistles

all

saturated with the proper sectarian


the

spirit.

And

yet

Church,

after

her victory

over

Paganism in the fourth century, forbore in the main to


destroy the works which she could not approve
;

in

any case

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


the task would have been enormously
difficult, so

141

wide was

the circulation of these fabulous histories.

Nothing was

attempted beyond the elimination or expurgation of any


flagrantly

unorthodox passages which had been attributed


:

the stories themselves were Of these apostolic biographies, known as the 'Apocryphal Acts,' many specimens have

to Christ or the Apostles

considered inoffensive.

survived
Syriac,

in

many

languages

Greek,

Latin,

Coptic,

Hardly a year passes without new fragments being discovered and not all we possess have
;

and Arabic.

yet been published.

It

is

a curious, even instructive,

bypath
of

of literature.

Needless to say,

we

learn nothing
;

what the

disciples actually did

and thought

but, at

least,

we

gain some insight, both into the opinions pre-

valent upon the subject


Christian communities,

among

the lower classes of the

and

into the singular mixture of

piety and romance which beguiled the religious imagination of the fourth century.

So much by way of preface. I shall now give a summary of one of these narratives entitled The Acts of Andrew and Matthias in the City of the Cannibals.' To
'

throw
the

its

character into clearer light,


its

I shall

simply

tell

tale,

without interrupting

course

by a commentary.
few remarks
in the

Only
hope

at the end, I shall allow myself a


of

determining the origin and sources of this anony-

mous
Saxon drew
'

composition, which has

come down

to us in

many

manuscripts and several languages, even in an old Anglotranslation.

The

Apostles, being gathered together in one place,

lots to decide

the country whither each should go

There is a recent study of this apocryphal work by Dobschiitz, Deutsche Rundschau, April 1902, pp. 87-107. My own memoir was written before I saw that of the German scholar.

142

CULTS, MYTHS.

AND RELIGIONS

and preach the Gospel. The country of the Cannibals fell to Matthias, who had been chosen to fill the place of
Judas after the great betrayal. These Cannibals were a they ate no bread and drank no wine, terrible people
:

but fed upon the

flesh

and blood

of

men.

When

a stranger

entered their town, they seized him, put out his eyes, and

gave him to drink


reason.

of a

magic drug that destroyed

his

gates, they laid hold of him, constrained

The moment Matthias stepped within their him to drink the potion, blinded him, threw him into prison, and brought him grass to eat. But Matthias ate none, and
in his tribulation

prayed fervently to the Christ.


in his prison, of a
light,

While he was yet praying


from out
saying

sudden

he beheld a bright and shining


of
it,
'
:

and a voice issued

Beloved, regain thy vision.'

And immediately he
him
end

could

see.

Then the voice exhorted

to take courage,

and promised that he should be

saved by the Apostle Andrew, who should come at the


of twenty-seven

days and deliver him from the pains

of captivity.

Matthias
executioners

sat

in

his

prison

and sang.
the victims

When

the

entered,

seeking

appointed

for that day, Matthias shut his eyes, that they

might

think him

still

blind.

To

his

right

hand they had

fastened a label, ^ inscribed with the date of his imprison-

ment
after

he was to wait,

like a beast

being fattened for

the slaughter, until thirty days had been accomplished,

which he would be fetched, and

slain,

and carved

limb from limb.

On
'

the twenty-seventh day the Lord appeared to

This label is called rdfiXa the same term which was applied to the name-plates affixed to the Egyptian mummies (Le Blant, Rev.
arched. 1874,
i.

p. 244).


APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI
Andrew and bade him
this
set

143

out with his disciples for the


:

land of the Cannibals, that he might deliver Matthias

he was to do within the term of three days.

The

Apostle answered that he was ready to go, but the land


of the

Anthropophagi was

far distant,

and

it

were better
'

the Master should give this charge to an angel.

Obey,'

answered the Lord,


with thy disciples
after
;

'

arise early,

and get thee

to the shore

there thou wilt find a boat.'

And,

He had The morrow morning,

blessed Andrew,

He ascended
first

into heaven.

at the

hour,

Andrew and
ye,

his disciples

went to the seashore, and saw there a small


he asked

boat in which were three


brethren
Pilot,
'

'

them.
'

men

seated.
'

'

Whither go

We

go,'

said

Andrew.
:

to the land of the Anthropophagi.'


'

all

answered the
'

But,' said the Pilot,


wilt
'

that land

why

thou go

And I, too,' men avoid


there,'

'

have business

answered Andrew,

my

comrades.'

and

would

fain

come on board with

'

Come,

then,' said the Pilot.


'

'

Before
thee
so

we come,' replied Andrew, it we have no money wherewith

is

fitting I

should

tell

to

pay our passage, nor

much as bread to eat.' ' Why then think ye of embarking, and how will ye make the journey?' demanded the
Pilot.

'

Listen, brother,

Jesus Christ,
forth

we are the disciples of our God, who hath commanded

the Lord

us to go

and preach, but hath forbidden us to take with us


or food, or even a change of raiment. 1
If

money

thou

wilt receive us as

we

are, tell us

If that,' said the Pilot, must search otherwhere.' be the order which ye have received and to which ye are obedient, I am most willing to take you on board yea,
' '

if

thou wilt not, we

'

Matt. X. 10

' :

Provide neither gold, nor

silver,

nor brass in your


Cf.

purses, nor scrip for your joui-ney, neither

two

coats, neither shoes, nor

yet staves

for the

workman

is

worthy

of his meat.'

Mark

vi. 9.

144

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
gold and silver
:

far before those that give

me

for

it is

joy to

me

to behold in

my

boat an apostle of the Lord.'


blessed him,

Andrew thanked him and


board.
'

and

all

went on
of

Go

into the hold

and seek there three loaves


'
;

bread,' said the Pilot to one of the sailors

our passengers

must

eat that they

may

and the
thou art

sea-sickness.'

bear the moving of the waves


'

'

Brother,' said Andrew,


in the

may
'
!

Lord give thee to share

bread of heaven

'

the
'

If

in truth a disciple of Christ,' said the captain,

tell

thy followers of the miracles of thy Lord, that they


rejoice in heart

may
The

and be no more afraid


left

of the sea.'

boat had already


his disciples,

the shore

and Andrew reminded


ease,

day,

who were distraught and ill at when he was on the Lake with Jesus, a
which the Master had quickly
said a prayer,

how one
Then
fall

great tempest
stilled.

had

arisen,

Andrew
upon

and asked that sleep should

his disciples.

Nor had he finished praying before


an arrow over an
'
!

they were wrapped in a deep slumber.

The boat sped


'

like

oily sea.

'

How
I

well thou steerest the bark


I

said

Andrew

to the Pilot,

have been
skill

seen
'

like thine.'

a sailor for sixteen years,


'

nor have

yet

We,

likewise,'

answered the
;

Pilot,

have sailed far and run

many
it

dangers

but since thou

art a disciple of Jesus, behold, the sea

knoweth thou

a just

man, and

therefore

remaineth calm.'

art

'

return

Thee thanks,
caused me to
'

Lord

' !

cried

fall in

with one

that Thou hast who doth glorify Thy name

Andrew,

'

'

Tell

other miracles than those of which


hesitated a while,

me, disciple of Jesus, did not thy Master work men speak ? 'Andrew

curiosity of the Pilot.

and then consented to satisfy the One day, accompanied by the

twelve Apostles, Jesus entered a pagan temple, before

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


which were two Sphinxes.
from
its

145
arise

One

of these

He bade

pedestal, go to the priests,

and convince them

of His divine mission.

with a

The Sphinx obeyed, and spoke Then said Jesus to the Sphinx Go thou to the Land of Canaan, even to the field of Mamre, and awaken in their sepulchres Abraham and Isaac and

human

voice.

Jacob, and bring them hither

to

the temple.

Again the

Sphinx obeyed, and returned with the three Patriarchs.

Then the Lord dismissed the


the Sphinx to take again
'

and ordered by the temple-door. Many other miracles He wrought,' added Andrew, but were I to tell them all, thy patience would be overPatriarchs,
its

place

'

borne.'

'

'

Not

so,'

answered the

Pilot,

'

for

it is

always

pleasing to

me

to listen to edifying discourse.'

In the meantime, the boat was approaching the shore.

The

Pilot leaned his

head on the shoulder

of

one of the
silent

sailors,

and held

his peace.

Andrew,

too,

was

and
his

finally fell asleep.

When

he saw that he was sleeping,


'
:

the Pilot said to his sailors

Put your hands under

body, and carry Andrew and his disciples to the walls of


the city of the Anthropophagi
;

then come again to me.'


till

The and

sailors

spread their wings, hidden

then, obeyed

returned.

Then Jesus

for,

as

may

be divined, the

mysterious Pilot was none other than the Redeemer


himself

ascended into heaven with His angels who had


sailors.
is

taken the form of


It

certainly

wonderful

picture.

If

Benozzo

Gozzoli or Memling had


pieces
it

known
!

the legend, what master-

would have inspired

* And there are also many other things which John xxi. 25 Jesus did, the which, if they should be written everyone, I suppose that even the world itself could not contain the books that should be
'
:

written.'

146

CULTS. MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
his
'

At daybreak Andrew awoke on land and found


disciples sleeping

around him.

Awake,' he

said,

'

and

learn that

we have been transported

hither without our

knowledge by the Lord, who humbled Himself under


the guise of a sailor, and thereby put us to the
test.'

Then he prayed and supplicated the Lord to manifest Himself and Jesus appeared as a child of wondrous beauty. Andrew craved His forgiveness because he had not known Him. Thou hast not sinned,' said
:

'

Jesus,

'

but thou didst doubt whether

it

were possible

for thee to

pophagi

come in three days to the land of the Anthroand I have shown thee that to Me all things

are possible.
deliver him,

Now go
and

to the prison

where Matthias
is

is,

and

also every stranger that

with him.
shall
it

Thou

shalt be cruelly tormented,


in torrents
;

and thy blood


die,

gush out

but thou shalt not

for

is

ordained to the inhabitants of this city that they shall

become

believers.'

And having

so spoken.

He

ascended

into heaven.

Andrew and
Andrew
offered

his disciples arrived at the prison


It

without

being discovered.

was surrounded by seven guards.


instant they

up a prayer, and on the


;

dropped down dead


the door,

he made the sign of the Cross on


it

and

at

once
cell

swung open.

They found
they embraced

Matthias seated in his

singing

hymns

one another

and

so

the promise of the Saviour to

Matthias was

accomplished before the thirtieth day.

In the same prison were naked


grass

men and women

eating

strangers
reason,

whom

the savages had bereft of sight


for the shambles.

and

and were now fattening

Andrew

restored their sight

by touching
;

their eyes, their

reason by touching their breasts

and thus were two

hundred and seventy men and forty-nine women delivered

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


by the Apostle. town and
to
sit

147

Andrew

counselled
fig-tree,

them
whose

to leave the
fruit,

under a large

miracu-

lously multiplied,

would give them never-failing nourishMatthias and his disciples to a mountain


Himself, he remained

ment
where

then he caused a cloud to descend from heaven,


off

which carried
St.

Peter awaited them.

alone in the town, and seeing a bronze pillar on which

was a

statue, sat behind

it

and watched what

befell.

The
the
cells

executioners, having gone to the prison to look

for victims,

found the guards stretched out dead and

all

empty.

On

this,

they carried the tidings to the


'

magistrates, whose hearts misgave them.


prison,'

Return

to

the

they said to the executioners,

'

the bodies of the guards, that

we may

eat

and bring back them to-day.

Then
lots

we call together all the aged people and draw from among them in order that we may have seven
will

to eat each day.

That

shall suffice us for a


;

time

meanshall

while
set

we

will

equip our vessels

our young

men

out on a foray and bring back prisoners that we

may

eat

and be

filled.'

The executioners did as they were told and began the task of cutting up the seven guards but suddenly their knives fell and their hands became as stone. Woe is
;

'

us

' !

cried the magistrates,

'

there
!

is

wizardry at work

for our

undoing
'
!

But, quick

gather together the gi ay-

beards

No

sooner said than done.

They found two


lot

hundred and seventeen old men, and the


seven to be eaten that day.

appointed

One

of

them besought the

executioners to spare him, and offered in his stead his

own

son and daughter.

The magistrates agreed but the poor children wept piteously and begged that they might be allowed to grow up. None the less, they were haled
;

to the place of sacrifice,

where there was an oven to cook

148

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
Then Andrew,
himself, prayed to the Lord.
of the doomsmen. must we then perish

the flesh and a basin to receive the blood.

who saw everything, unseen


Again the knives
'

fell

from the hands


'

Woe

is

us

'
!

cried the magistrates,


'

from hunger

As they were thus lamenting, the devil appeared to Search the town,' them in the guise of a little old man.
'

by the name of for it is he who has Andrew, and put him to death delivered your prisoners, and whose spells reduce you But Andrew was invisible. They closed the to famine.' everywhere, but in vain. Then the ferreted they gates, Arise now and Lord appeared to Andrew and said
he said to them,
'

for a certain stranger


:

'

show
*

th^^self to
I

these men.'

'

Here

am

I,'

cried

Andrew,

whom you seek.' In a twinkling the multitude round and began to deliberate what manner of him ringed he must death he should die. Killing was all too little into long. A man, whom devil suffer the and suffer
it

is

had and

entered, advised

them

to bind a rope about his neck

to drag him through the highways and byways of

the town, then,

when he was

dead, to eat him.

The

crowd shouted in approval, and at once the torture of

Andrew began the Apostle's flesh was horribly bruised by the stones, and the blood flowed from his body like But he could not die, and, when evening fell, water.
:

he was thrown into the prison, with his hands tied behind him. The next morning they dragged him through the
streets
;

but, for
'

all

his torments,

he never ceased praying

to the Lord.
'

Hit him on the mouth,' said the devil, his breath.' The night came, and spare him and let once more he was led back to prison. The devil, likewise, with seven others, repaired thither to insult him and to compass his death, but they were not able to draw

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


near to him
head.
:

149

for the seal of the

Lord was upon

his fore-

The

third

day

his torture

began again, and again

he was brought back at nightfall to his dungeon.

He
:

was weary and outworn, and covered with wounds


completely restored his strength.

but

the Lord appeared to him, took him by the hand, and

Andrew

arose,

and

perceived, in the middle of the prison, a pillar crowned

with a statue of alabaster.


silent

This,

though the text

is

on the point, was probably one of those statue-

fountains which discharged a stream of water

generally
in

from the mouth.


the
period,
in our

The
is

type, which

was very common

Roman museums. Andrew

represented

by

a host of examples

ordered the statue to send


its

forth water so copiously from

mouth

that the impious

inhabitants of the town should rue the day.


instantly obeyed,

The statue
of

and began

to

vomit a very torrent

con^osive waters that ate into the flesh

and flowed without

a respite.

At
flooded,

daybreak

the inhabitants saw their town was


to flee in
all

and began

directions, looking for a

refuge elsewhere.
'

Then Andrew

pra^-ed to the Lord

Forsake

me

not,

Lord, but send thine archangel

Michael in a cloud, that he

may draw
by
flames,

a circle of

fire
it.'

around

this city,

so that

none
girt

shall escape out of

Immediately the town was

and the water,

rising to the necks of the people,


flesh.
'

kept eating into their


'

Woe

is

us

'
!

they cried,

all

these calamities
!

have

fallen

upon us because

of the stranger in the prison

Let us go and deliver him,

else

we

shall perish, everyone.'

They ran
'

to the prison, crying with might

and main
!

God of the stranger, deliver us from this water Andrew heard them, and, seeing their affliction, said to
the statue
:

'

'

Stay thy flow of water, for

judge the

150

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

inhabitants of this town are desirous of espousing the


true faith
I will
;

here will

build a church, and in that church

place thee, in token of the service thou hast done


to send forth water.
of the prison

The statue then ceased inhabitants came to the gates


hie.'

The and humbly

prayed the God of the stranger to have pity on their


misfortune.

Andrew
as he

left

the prison and walked towards


his

them
feet.

and

walked the water withdrew from

The

entire multitude asked

those

who thus

supplicated
his

him mercy. Among him was the old man who


pity,'

had given over


'

son and daughter to the butchers.

How

darest thou ask

my

said
?

Andrew,
I

'

who

knewest not pity


therefore, that

for thine
this

own

children

say to thee,

when

water shall return into the abyss,

thou shalt go with it, and with thee also the fourteen headsmen who were content to spill blood every day.' Then Andrew raised his eyes to heaven the earth
:

opened and swallowed up the water and with

it

the old

man and
'

the fourteen executioners.

This
kill

man comes from God


us
!

' !

cried the savages,


fire

he

will

all,
'

consume us
children

'

he

will

make
afraid,

the

to descend

and

Be not

my

children,'

answered

Andrew, and he restored

to

life all

the men,

who had been destroyed by

the flood.

women, and Then he


:

drew up a plan for a church and caused it to be built and he baptised every living soul, and preached the
Gospel of Jesus.
town.
'

That done, he resolved

to leave the

In vain the people sought to keep him near them.


'

must go,' said Andrew, to find my disciples,' and he went his way, leaving his new converts in great sorrow
I

that they had lost

him

so soon.

Thereupon, Jesus,
to

in the

form of a
'

little child,

appeared

Andrew.

'

Why,' he

said,

couldst thou not tarry with

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


this

151

people a few da\'S

Their cries and tears have

ascended to

Me

in

heaven.

Return

to the

town and abide


and
shalt

there seven days until their hearts are confirmed in the


faith.

Thou

shalt

preach

My

Gospel,

lead

back
pit.'

to the light all

them

that are in the darkness of the

Andrew returned thanks


was welcomed
divine word.
in

to the

Lord who thus made

manifest his wish that every soul should be saved.

He

the town with ecstasies of joy, and


da^'s,

remained there seven

teaching and preaching the


all

Then, when he again departed,

sped

him on

his journey,
'
:

from the
is

little

children to the old

men, saying

There
'
!

but one God, the God of Andrew,


to

and but one Lend Jesus,


forever.

whom

be glory and power

Amen

And now
tale.

to clear

up the geography
title
'

of this strange

In a sequel to

it,

which bears the


Myrne.

The Martyrdom
Anthroit

of Saint Matthias, the Apostle,' the city of the

pophagi

is

called

Other authorities have


All
three,

Myrmene
recognised,

or
are

Myrmidona.
Chersonese

as

Gutschmid
a town in

corruptions of Myrmecion,

the

Tauric

the

modern

Crimea.

From
1

Herodotus onward, the Greeks believed that several


tribes of

what

is

now

Russia were anthropophagous.

Of course, cannibalism was utterly extinct


'
:

in Scythia at

' Herodot. iv. io6 The Cannibals are in their customs the savagest people on earth, neither regarding justice nor observing any form of Nomads one and all, they wear a garb resembling the Scythic, law. but speak a language proper to themselves, and are the onlv people hereabout who relish human flesh.' For the anthropophagi of Scythia and Northern Europe, see Mullenhoff, Deutsche Altertumsktmde,

vol.

ii.

p. 1S3.

152

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
is

the period to which the story


it

supposed to relate
is

but

is

hardly necessary to prove that the tale


sailors'

founded

on a

legend which must have been centuries older.

The point
probably

at

which Andrew and

his

companions embarked
of the

was an Asiatic town on the shores


Sinope.

Black Sea,
wind,
it

Even with
for a

favourable

would be impossible

boat to cover the distance


in three

between Sinope and the Crimea


he

days

whence
must be

Andrew's hesitation at the beginning


If

of our narrative.
it

made

the journey in less than a day,


at the helm.

remembered that Christ was


Shall
in

we say

that the legend had birth in the Crimea,

some town where a church, containing an alabaster


was under the patronage
to
of the apostle

statue,

Andrew,

and

supposed

have

been

founded

by

him

Undoubtedly, the legend would have been popular


a locality of that type, but
it

in
it

is

hardly possible that


of
fact,

originated

there.

As a matter

in

the
is

story

which Andrew
of a

tells

Jesus in the boat, mention

made
intelli-

temple guarded by sphinxes.

The only country

where such a detail would have been universally


gible
is

Egypt.'

Now,

after the Ptolemaic period, the


;

Egyptians were the great sea-carriers of the world


earlier
still,

and,

the Phoenicians in the maritime service of


into their adopted country
all

Egypt must have introduced


have gone down to the sea
Ul^^sses.
I
>

a thousand of those marvellous tales, beloved of


in ships since the

that

days of

conclude, then, that the legend of

Andrew

is

based

It is only fair, however, to mention the palace surrounded by sphinxes and griffins, which, according to Herodotus (iv. 79), was built by the Scythian king Scyles. Suvaroff claimed to have discovered a sphinx's head on the Kuban (Olenine, Tour in Tatirida,

London, 1S02,

p. 413).

Cf. Ritter, Vorhalle, p. 226.

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


on nothing more than a romance spun by
familiar w'ith the
Sea,
sailors

153

who were

cannibal-haunted shores of the Black

and that similar effusions devoid as yet of any Christian element must have had their vogue around

the docks of Alexandria.'

Of

all

the

nations

that

adopted Christianity, the

Egyptians had the oldest collection of written tales. Not to mention those garnered by Herodotus, we have an
appreciable

in

number which we can

of others

translated by M. Maspero
many
a feature of those
their wa}' in

recognise

folk-stories

which have never ceased to win

the world.

Some
is

of

them

are certainly earlier than the

year 1400 b.c.

Here there

an important observation to be made.

One of the most curious episodes in the history of Andrew and Matthias is that of the unfortunates who have their senses drowned by a magic drug, are transformed into
brutes,

and remain

for thirty

days eating grass, until they


:

are
is

fit

meat

for their cannibal masters

Matthias himself

careful not to touch

what
third
is

is

offered him.

Now,

this

episode

recurs

in

the

Sindbad the

Sailor,

which

voyage extraordinary of included in the Arabian

collection of the

Thousand and One Nights.his

Sindbad and

companions are shipwrecked upon


black savages, perfectly naked.
'

an island peopled
'

b}^

Without saying a word,' Sindbad proceeds, they took possession of us and made us enter a great room, where
M. I'abbe Lejay has pointed out to me the likeness between the Andrew and that of Circe in the Odyssey. It is possible to suppose that there was a grosser form of the latter legend, in which Circe fattened up the men whom she had changed into animals, so
'

story of

as to be able to eat
-

them

at her leisure.
vol.
vi.

Mardrus' translation,

p.

137.

Gutschmid has already

drawn attention

to the parallel.

154

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
The king

we found
filled

a king seated upon a lofty chair.


sit

ordered us to

down, and they brought us dishes

with food such as in our whole lives we had never

seen.

The

sight of the food did not in the least excite


it

my
like
life.

appetite, as

did that of

gluttons.

As for me, With the very first mouthfuls, a ravenous hunger

my shipmates who ate my abstinence saved my

laid hold of

my

comrades, and for hours they swallowed


like

whatever was brought them, gesticulating

madmen

and snuffing

like

animals.

Whilst they were in this

condition, the blackamoors fetched a vase filled with a


sort of ointment, with

which they rubbed their bodies


their

all
:

over.

Its effect

upon

stomachs was extraordinary

they swelled in every direction, until they were bigger

than a distended water-skin


in proportion.
I

and

their

hunger increased

persisted in

my

refusal to eat the food,

nor would

allow them to rub


restraint

me
:

with the ointment.

And
these

truly

my

was wise

for I discovered that


flesh

men were
means

eaters of

human

and used these


I

various

to fatten such as

fell

into their hands.

soon noticed a considerable diminution of


intelligence, in direct proportion to the

my companions'
growth of
their

stomachs.

They ended by being completely

brutalised,

and when they were sunk


slaughter-house,

to the level of beasts in the

they were confided to the care of a


in a

shepherd who led them daily to graze


This parallelism puts the
stories

meadow.'

beyond dispute

common ground of the two in both, human victims are


coin-

reduced by their executioners to the condition of grasseating ruminants.

The analogy must be more than


forecastle

cidence

the

same

yarn inspired the twin

episodes in the Acts of the Apostle

Andrew and

in the

Third Voyage of Sindbad.

APOSTLES AMONG ANTHROPOPHAGI


If

155 the

we

are to believe a goodl}'

nucleus of the
origin.

number of Thousand and One Nights is

critics,

of

Hindoo

Since Benfey, a numerous school of folklorists

has sought to establish India as the starting-point of


the popular stories which crop up in
all

three divisions of

the ancient world and bear, on a close investigation, so


startling

family-likeness.
it

The theory arose

in

the
of

days when

was heresy

to

doubt the high antiquity

Indian civilisation

days when many believed that India


and languages
of a

was the mother

of the nationalities

part of Asia and Europe.

The contrary has been proved


But whatever antiquity

to demonstration within the last thirty years, but the

old

prejudice

still

survives.

we ma}' be disposed
Europe,
it is

to attribute to the civilisations of

certain that the civilisation of

Egypt

is still

more

ancient,

and that we possess Egyptian

stories of

far earlier date

than those of Brahminic India.

More,

we know

that India, until a comparatively recent era,

had

neither shipping nor

commerce

whereas Egypt,

in the

Ptolemaic and

Roman

periods, exported to India metals,

wines, and manufactured articles,

and brought back


It is

in

return the products of the

soil.

more natural

to

ascribe the diffusion of stories to a commercial country'

than to one where an export trade was non-existent.


Everything,
therefore,

seems to indicate that Eg\'pt

was the great

story-teller of the world

that

the Indian
is

tales are of Eg^-ptian origin

and

that the case

the

same with the groundwork


Nights.

of the

ever-charming Arabian

Thus,
at the

b}'

two

different trains of reasoning

we

arrive

same conclusion.
is

The legend
origin,
;

of Matthias

and
it

Andrew

of

Egyptian

because we find in
it is

features peculiar to

Egypt

and

of

Egyptian

origin.

156
because
of the

CULTS, MYTHS,
it

AND RELIGIONS
common
with a story
to

contains elements in

Thousand and One Nights, which would seem


sailor's tale.
off

be derived from an Egyptian


I

could round

my

demonstration by showing the


in the constitution of
first

important part played by Egypt

the great cycle of legends which surround the


of Christianity,

centuries

but that would lead

me

too far.

My

literature

main object has been to present to you one specimen of a which was once popular, is now forgotten, but
If I

can never be ignored by the student of religion.

have inspired you with the desire to read any of the


Apocr^'phal Acts of the Apostles, either in the Greek
edition
of

Lipsius

and Bonnet, or

in

the

convenient

English translation published by Walker at Edinburgh


in 1890, I shall consider that this

hour of your time and

mine has not been

ill

spent.

CHAPTER X
THE BABYLONIAN MYTHS AND THE FIRST CHAPTERS OF
GENESIS
1

The problem

of the origin of the

world and man, to which

anthropology, geology, and the kindred sciences are

now

systematically seeking a clue, confronted humanity the

moment

it

became

self-conscious.

Cosmogonies

and poetic attempts

at reading the riddle

simple have had their


remnant
borrowings

day among most


has been handed

nations, though only a feeble

down

to us in written or verbal tradition.

The study

of cosmogonies, their sources, their


in the course of the ages,
is

and lendings
one.

consequently a

chapter of science, and by no means the least interesting

Hebrew cosmogony,
it

in particular,

with the ascendall

ancy which

has contrived to establish over nearly


title

the

white races, has a distinct


attention.

to the anthropologist's

In fact,

by the enormous

influence which
it

it is

has exercised on the development of the science,

now

part and parcel of the history of anthropology.

The
by

vicissitudes of that influence

retarding in certain respects,


recently been outlined

stimulating in others

have

Andrew

\A'hite

in

several

chapters

of

his

invaluable

L' Anthropologic y 1901, pp. 683-688.

157

158
work,
'

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
Warfare
of

A
^

History

of

the

Science

with

Theology.'
It is

common knowledge
and

that the Bibhcal cosmogony

comprises two documents of different date,


spectively as Jehovistic

known

re-

Elohistic, because the Al-

mighty
so

is

called Jehovah (Jahveh) in one

and Elohim

a plural form

in the other.

These documents were not

much

fused as juxtaposed by an

anonymous

editor,

writing certainly after the destruction of the kingdoms


Israel

from the Captivity

and Judah by the Assyrians, possibly after the return in 536 B.C. Of late years it has been

found feasible to distinguish the two versions and publish

them

separately, showing that each forms a continuous


totally

legend,
instance,

irreconcilable

with

the

other.'-

For

by the

Elohist's account,
;

created together created


first,

according to
later

man and woman were the Jehovist man was


a companion.

and

God gave him

The

Elohist has no mention of the Garden of Eden, nor of the


Original Sin,

two

features of prime importance in the

Jehovist

version.

needless to insist on

not Genesis, our Bible, of


rise to

The facts are notorious, and it is them here. In a word Geneses, The juxtaposition, in is the correct term. the Elohist and Jehovist versions has given

a mass of difficulties and flagrant contradictions


if

which vanish on the instant


of

we admit

the existence

two
It

distinct traditions.

has also been

known

since 1875

thanks

to the

English Assyriologist George


tives,

Smith that

poetical narra-

remarkably

like the legends of the

Hebrew Geneses,

were current in Assyria and Babylonia as early as the second millennium before our era. Long fragments of
1

London, 1897,

vol.

i.

pp.

i,

209, 266, 284, 303.


I'hisioire, vol.
i.

See Lenormant, Les ovigines de

pp.

sqq.

'

THE BABYLONIAN MYTHS


these
narratives,
'

159
'

belonging to

pair

of

epics,

The

Creation

and

'

Gilgames,' have been deciphered from

tablets found at Nineveh.

were inadequate
to the

The but little by

hrst translations proposed


little,

owing

in a

measure

combined

efforts of a generation of Orientalists,

and

in

a measure to the discovery of

new

fragments,

we have

arrived at a sufficiently accurate idea of the old


It

Babylonian cosmogonies.
has never been

goes without saying that

their often startling resemblance to the Biblical legends


lost sight of. It constitutes the main book by M. I'abbe Loisy, who comes to his

theme
an

of a

subject with the double authority of an Orientalist


historian.^

and

We

cannot do better than leave him to

speak for himself,


'

The

relation

between Chaldaean and Jewish traditions


it

is

not so simple as

seemed to be

in the

days when the

Biblical

legends were supposed to be derived entirely

and

directly

from the

religious literature of the Chaldreans.


first

We

can no longer take the

eleven or twelve chapters

of Genesis as a

whole and treat them as a monotheistic


(p.

redaction of the Babylonian myths'


Biblical

7).

'The

accounts

are

not

mere

transcriptions.

The
of the

Chaldaean legends unquestionably supplied

much

material for the Biblical legends, but the gaps between

them presuppose much

assimilation

and transformation,

much
(p.

time,
. .
.

and probably many intermediaries to boot


'If the relationship of the Bibhcal narrais

10).

tives to the Chaldaean legends

in

many

respects less

intimate than was thought,


general.
still

it

now

appears to be more
in particular, are
;

The

Creation,

and the Flood

the most obvious points of resemblance


A. Loisy, Les mythes babyloniens
et

but the

'

les

premiers chapitres de la

Genise, Paris, Picard, 1901.

i6o
story of
of
life,

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

Adam and

Eve, the earthly Paradise, the food

the explanation of death,

all of

which have some-

times been sought where they were not to be found,

are
'

now found where


(p.

there was no thought of seeking


texts

them

ii).

'The Bibhcal

have no
;

literary

de-

pendence upon the Babylonian texts

they do not even

stand to them in a relation of direct dependence in the


case of the special traditions they exhibit
:

but they rest

on a similar
of

we

might say a common

foundation,
even
it

Chaldaean origin, whose antiquity cannot be


estimated.

approximately

... On the

other

hand,

appears certain that the period of Assyrian dominance,

and the Captivity, quickened the recollection of the old traditions and supplemented them by fresh materials The easy to graft on the ancient stem (p. loi).
' ' .
.
.

transformation of the Chaldaean into the Jewish legends

was not the work

of

one or two men, but of

many men

and many generations.


aside the influence exerted

And, without entirely setting

by written documents, we may well believe that the metamorphosis was complete in the oral tradition of the people before the legend was embodied
in the Biblical narrative'
(p.

171).

'
.
. .

It

would be a

mistake to interpret this community of legendary material


as

sign

of

Israel's

inferiority.

Free exchange has


Its tales are the

always been the rule in mythology.


output of anonymous ingenuity
;

and

their value, for the

most

part, lies in the


'

meaning attached to them by the


'
.

borrower

(p. 10).

In the Jewish tradition, neither

the mythological nor the poetic form has been preserved.

The

epic

poem reverts, and becomes


God'

a story in prose again

but the story takes on a moral cast in order to adjust


to the character of the one
(p.

itself

12).

'Israel

exploited these reminiscences in the interests of a highly

THE BABYLONIAN MYTHS


moral
cult of

i6i

uncompromising

principles.

Instead of
spirit

crystallising into a definitive

form retaining the

and

distinctive features of their original version, the old

traditions were incorporated piecemeal,


lated, in a

and

left

unassimi-

compilation destined to regulate faith


Israelitish legend

and

conduct.

The
2ii).

was submerged

in the

Law

'

(p.

The abbe formulates


his distinction,

his conclusions

with the clearness


of

and elegance which might be expected from a writer


though they are a poor substitute
detailed arguments

for the
Still,

by which he supports them.

they serve to convey some idea of their

own importance
to take in the

and the place which they are destined


historic

and exegetic science

of our day.

The path had


1890

already been prepared

especially

since

by

the

profound researches of Messrs. Jensen, Jeremias, Gunkel,


Jastrow, &c.

In his critical

summary
the
first

of their results,

M. Loisy lays no claim


at least the

to originality.

However, he has
French account

honour

of giving

of one of the of

most

interesting chapters in the history

ideas

together

with

the

consequences

which

it

implies.

As the creation
the

of

cosmogonies answers to a need of

human mind
world

that of knowing the why and wherefore


natural to suppose that at
first

of the

it is

they

existed in large numbers,

which were only gradually

reduced by a process of selection.

We may

therefore

conjecture that the tribes whose union constituted the

Jewish people admitted other systems of cosmogony than those preserved in the pages of Genesis.

Now

and
of a

this is a recent discovery of capital


if

importance

there are in the Bible,

not in Genesis, undoubted traces

third cosmogony, eliminated

by the

editors of the

'

i62

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
of the

Pentateuch, but mentioned by the Prophets, the authors


of the Psalms,
it

and the writer


are

Book of

Job, as though

were

perfectly

familiar

conception.

With that
through the
of a

conception we

now

well acquainted

Babylonian
very old

texts.

Here we have a fresh instance

belief

common

to the ancestors of the Chaldseans

and Jews of the first millennium before Christ, a belief which held its ground in Chaldaea but left only sporadic
traces in the religious literature of the Hebrews.

'

When
'

the high priest Joad says, in

'

Athahe

He that can curb the fury of the When treachery lifts her head, is
is

wave.
strong to save,'

the allusion

to certain well-known passages of Scripture

which

-preserve

an echo

of the

struggle

of the

Almighty

against the great deep.

These passages are made sun-clear


of the

by the Chaldaean history

god Marduk, who, before

creating or organising the world,

had

to gain the victory

over Chaos and the unchained waters of Ocean.

With
is

Marduk,

'

the gods are masters of the situation

free to

arrange the world


conquered,

according to their

will.

Chaos

reduced
(p. 30).
.

to
.

Tiamat has fallen. Their auxiliaries are captivity, condemned to eternal chains
'

Even
;

after
after

Marduk has

pierced her heart


;

and cloven her head


half the earth

he has cut her body asunder

after half her carcass has


;

become the firmament, and Tiamat still lives and is still to be dreaded.
For

Marduk
'

alone can hold her in check, and prevent her

from devouring men and oversetting the world.'

Tiamat

is

the ever living, ever menacing, sea


is

the power

God the Creator and Marduk never


of

always necessary to tame her frenzy,

ceases to redeem the world from chaos


'

by his triumph over Tiamat

(p.

86).

Now,

if

in Genesis the idea of a preliminary struggle


THE BABYLONIAN MYTHS
the Creator
is

163

before the final creation has entirely disappeared, and

master from the beginning, yet the Chaldaean


'

conception of chaos resisting the demiurge

survived in
life in

Jewish legend and took as


apocalyptic tradition
of the texts
'

it

were a new lease of

the

(p.

99).

The

following are

some

which verify the foregoing statements and

prove that, in a forgotten but once popular cosmogony,

Jewry was considered, not as the author but as the conqueror of the elements, which are sometimes personified under the names of Rahab and Leviathan
the
of

God

sea monsters of the

same family

as Tiamat.

Job
'

ix.

13

1
:

God returneth not from his anger Before him bow down the auxiharies
;

of

Rahab.

In his power he holdeth the sea in check, In his wisdom he whelmeth Rahab. At his breath the heavens are brightened His hand pierceth the fleeing serpent.'

Job
'

vii.

12 (Job loquitur)
I

Am

That thou

the sea or a monster of the waters, settest a barrier against me ?


'

Job
'

xxxviii.

8-14 (Jahveh loquitur)

Who

When When

shut up the sea with doors it burst forth from its mother's womb I traced its frontiers And set doors and bars for it Hitherto shalt thou come, and no farther Here shall thy proud waves be stayed.'
:

Isaiah

li.

9-10

(the

prophet invokes the arm

of

Jahveh)
'

Art thou not

it

that hath cut Rahab,


?

And wounded

the dragon

Art thou not it which hath dried the The waters of the great deep ?
'

sea.

'

We

reproduce M. Loisy's

literal translations.

i64

CULTS, MYTHS,
Psalm Ixxxix.
:

AND RELIGIONS

'

For who in Heaven is comparable with Jahveh, For who is hke unto Jahveh among the sons of the gods It is thou who rulest the pride of the sea,

And who
It is

stillest

the fury of

its

billows,

thou who hast trampled upon Rahab as upon one


;

slain

Thou hast

scattered thine enemies with thy strong arm.'


'

Ezekiel (xxxii. 2-8)

announces the punishment of the

King

of

Egypt, by recalHng the history of the dragon

of the waters

who was hewn


to a sea

in pieces

by the

Creator.

He compares Pharaoh
casts his net, as

monster over

whom Jahveh
'

Marduk had done over Tiamat

(p. 87).

Again,

'

Jeremiah, in one of his oldest oracles

(iv.

23-26),

draws

his inspiration

from a description of chaos, when


effects of

he wishes to intimate the

the divine wrath.

He
(v.

represents the sea as curbed and quelled


22).

by Jahveh
no).
:

Amos

(ix.

3)

speaks of the monstrous serpent


(p.

that dwells at the bottom of the sea'

This
'

monster of chaos reappears


is

in Christian literature

It

identified with

Satan, and becomes the apocalyptic

dragon whose
of the

final destruction shall assure

the triumph

Saints.

The combat between Michael and the


(xii.

dragon in the Johannine Apocalypse


sequel of the

7-9)
'

is

the

combat between Jahveh and Rahab

(p. 39).

Thus, by the simple comparison of Assyrian and


Biblical texts,

we have

a flood of light thrown upon a

conception which classic fable re-echoes in the legend of


the war between Gods and Titans.

This restitution

of

third

cosmogony, foreign to
of Israel,

Genesis and held by the prophets

forms the

most interesting part of M. Loisy's work. But those and we hope they will be many who take the trouble

to read

it,

will find it full of

pregnant suggestions, coupled

THE BABYLONIAN MYTHS


inveterate errors.

165

with refutations, as discreet as they are firm, of recent or

We may
who

quote a few examples.

To
'

the apologists

try to reconcile the

modern idea
(p.

of evolution with Genesis,

the abbe answers

56)

There

is

not the slightest trace of evolution to be seen in


all

the narrative,

things being struck off in their present

forms by great successive batches


allowable.'
1

if

the expression

is

Those, again,
plural in Genesis

who

explain the use of an embarrassing


different hypotheses

by quoting
'
:

which

go back to the Fathers of the Church,to the following


is

may

be referred

judgment
in

The
it is

plural Let us

make man

not a plural of majesty

rather the indication of

an older source

which the Creator was not alone but


him.'^

The narrator has kept a grammatical form, the sense of which was clearer in
spoke to those around
a context that has not survived
'

(p. 57).

The abbe has


to the

also a succinct

answer

for those

who

assign both a great antiquity

and a peculiar moral value


*
:

Hebrew

tradition of the Deluge


is

The Jehovist
stratum of
It is

version of the Deluge


'

older

'

than Alexander the Great


first

but cannot go very far back, as the

Jehovist tradition has no mention of the Flood.


also

noticeable
it is

that

the

earliest
'

Hebrew
.

writer
.

who

alludes to

the second Isaiah

(p. 169).
is

'Granting

that the legend of a universal deluge


'

in itself a

myth and

Neither is there any question of evolution in the Babylonian myths, though Renan has spoken of their authors as the unknown
'

Darwins.'

Vigouroux, Dictionn. de la Bible, vol. i. p. 171. is to say an account of the creation in which the gods acted in concert. One of the orthodox explanations of the passage came unwittingl}' very near the truth God the Father, at the moment of creating man, would have consulted the two other persons of the
-

Cf.

That

Trinity.

i66

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
not the form that seems
likely to
is

cannot be anything

else, it is

the least marvellous which

most

be the oldest,

but the one that


mythological
'

is

the most nakedly and unreservedly


'

(p.

169).
se,

The idea

of a universal deluge

is

mythological per

and without
Indeed,

relation to

any moral

conception whatever.

we

are forced to confess


is

that the intervention of morality

responsible for a

contradiction which stands out in the Bibhcal accounts.


It

was found necessary

to explain

sends His floods upon the earth, though

why God no man is no

longer
better

than of old

and

the explanation involves a tacit ad-

mission that the punishment was equally exaggerated and


useless
If article,
'

(p.

136).

we have multipHed
the reason
is

textual

quotations

in

this

that

it is difficult,

impossible indeed,

to touch with greater tact than

M. I'abbe Loisy upon


one has

questions which even anthropologists agree in regarding


as distinctly dehcate,

perhaps only because no


and that

yet

known how

to trace a rational limit

between the

domain

of conscience

of historic science.
:

The
of

work

of demarcation has

become imperative
robbed

for the old

landmarks by which medievaUsm


half her heritage are

history
level

now worm-eaten and

with

the ground.
* M. Georges Fonsegrive, after many others, has recently made the same claim in the Quinzainc We ask that we shall not have something imposed on us to-day which will be rejected to-morrow by the very people who imposed it as has happened in the case of the Deluge. All we desire is to follow the theologians quietly, but we should like to be told clearly what are the points on which doubt is legitimate.' Personally, I do not follow M. Fonsegrive's allusion to the Deluge, as I am unaware that the theologians have ever removed belief in the Flood from the articles of faith.
' :

'

'

CHAPTER XI
THE HEBRAIC SABBATH
Mr. Jastrow's work on the Sabbath
in
^

deserves to be

generally known, but the special character of the review

which

it

appeared seems

likely

to

condemn

it

to

obscurity.
definitively

The
'

author,

distinguished

Orientalist,

refutes the absurd belief

which attributes

to

'

Moses

the institution of a day of obligatory rest

designed
If

to

safeguard the

Hebrew

against overwork.^

the Sabbath

now

changed to Sunday^

has,
it

in the

course of centuries,

become such a day


stands,

of rest,

simply

proves that when a superstition


of social utihty or hygiene,
it

allies itself

with motives
rightly,

and often

an excellent chance
similar to that which,

of

longevity.

But

originally

the

seventh day of rest was only a gross superstition absolutely

on the thirteenth of every month,

lightens the labour of the railways

and the steamboat

companies.
'

The Sabbath,

like the thirteenth,

was

at

first

L' Anthropologic, 1900, pp. 472-474. I have retouched the article. Morris Jastrow, The Original Character of the Biblical Sabbath. From the American Journal of Theology, vol. ii. no. 2, pp. 312-352. ^ Overwork might exist among industrial populations like our own, but not among pastoral or agricultural tribes. ^ Sunday was celebrated from the beginning of the second century as the day of the Resurrection of the Lord, KvpiaK-fi (Didache, xiv. i). Cf. Hotham, art. 'Lord's Day in the Dictionary of Christian Antiquities,
'

p. 1042.

167

i68

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

an unlucky day
Mr.

day when nothing should be under-

taken, because the gods were in an ungracious mood.

Jastrow might have found another proof of his


'

thesis in the

Works and Days

'

of Hesiod, a veritable

storehouse of taboos .^

After enumerating the propitious

and the unpropitious days, those on which work might be begun, and those on which it were better to abstain,
he adds
(v.

825)

'
:

At whiles a day

is

a stepmother to

a man, at whiles a mother.'

And

the

Boeotian
*
:

poet

knows why
fifth of

certain

days are dangerous


it is

Avoid the
.'
. .

every month, for


it

a dark and dreadful day,

and men say that upon


(802-803).

the Furies walk the earth

Thus Hesiod already knew that, in the farmer's case, the day of rest was an unlucky, a haunted and if the fact has so long been forgotten by the day
:

moderns,
critical

it

does something

less

than honour to their


Greeks and

faculty.

Moreover, the

Romans
it

believed that the Jewish Sabbath was essentially a day


of sadness
:

they have even

left it

on record that

was
to

a day of fasting,- an exaggeration due to the fact that the


Bible forbade
all

cooking on Saturdays.

Food had
is still

be prepared the day before, and the custom


fully observed by countless mothers in

faith-

Israel.

There were even

sticklers for the letter of the

Law who

prescribed complete immobihty on the Sabbath day.

We

have

it

on Origen's word that Dositheus, a contemporary

of Jesus,

and the head

of a

Samaritan sect with ascetic

tendencies, considered himself justified

by a passage

of

Exodus

(xvi. 29) in

ordering his disciples to keep for the


in

whole Sabbath the exact position


1 Cf. E. E. Sikes, Folklore in the Works cal Review, 1893, vol. vii. pp. 389-394).

which they might


of

and Days

Hesiod {Classiiiida'i-

2 See the texts in Th. Reinach's collection. Pontes rerum carum, vol. i. pp. 104, 243, 266, 287.

THE HEBRAIC SABBATH


happen
genii
to be at its beginning.

169
obviously the

Immobility

is

condition least likely to provoke the attacks of malevolent


;

an animal, when

it feels itself

threatened and sees

no other way of escape,


but
in all probability

feigns death.

Dositheus can hardly

have invented the precept which Origen attributes to him,


merely revived an old taboo which had
in a

dragged out an obscure existence


It

few devout

circles.

may

be urged

in favour of the social

and moral

character of the primitive Sabbath, that the Mosaic law

enjoined

rest,

not only for the master, but for his servants


10).

and domestic animals (Exodus xx.

Times without
philanthropist,

number

this text

has done duty in proving that Moses


of a

was inspired by the sentiments

modern

even to the extent of feeling pity for animals. 1

Pius

IX

judged more sanely, when, asked by an English society to


join a league for the protection of animals,

he answered

that he found no scriptural warrant for any such step.


If

man must
it

dispense with the

work

of his servant

and

his beast of burden on the Sabbath day, the simple reason


is

that

is

an unlucky day and that work done then


:

will

be either useless or worse

there

is

always the risk


so forth.

of injury to

man and

beast, sickness,

and

Fear

was the motive power of human


'

action long before charity.-

must plead

guilty to publishing equally sorry stuff in the Revue


ii.

ChariU juive). Neither M. Ch. Richet M. Gust le Bon whose opinions I we were three had arraigned in it saw how to unmask its folly ignorant people crying in the night. All this was not a hundred years ago, but a glance through my earlier production will show what progress science has made in the interval, thanks to the introduction into her vocabulary of a word unknown to Renan taboo. ' I am far from claiming that there is no morality, in the highest its originality and .sense of the word, in the so-called Mosaic Code grandeur lie precisely in the fact that the moral idea may be seen disengaging itself from primitive taboos. But that idea must not be sought where it does not exist, at the hazard of first putting it there, and then finding it afterwards.
Scientifique, 1888,
p.

67

{la

who answered my

article

nor

170

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS

The following is Mr. Jastrow's argument, which he draws entirely from Semitic sources, without tapping
those of folklore and comparative psychology.

The
part in
certain

idea of propitiating the divinity plays a great

Hebrew and Babylonian


days

rites.

Both distinguish
should be taken,

on

which

measures

either to ensure the goodwill of the gods, or to disarm or

prevent their anger.

One

of the

motives which guided

the choice of those days was the succession of the phases

Even now the countryman believes that the day of the moon's new quarter is critical, and ushers in a period of good or bad weather. This venerable
of the

moon.

superstition explains

why

the 7th, 14th, 21st and 28th


;

days of the lunar month were considered perilous


words, of unfavourable, or at
least, uncertain,

in other

augury.

When
to
of

in

doubt do nothing, says the old proverb.

These

days the Babylonians called sahattu or sapattu, a word said


correspond to the Hebrew shahhdthon, in the sense
cessation
(of

the divine wrath ?), pacification, and The old Hebrew Sabbath was marked by expiatory rites, meant to disarm or conciliate the deity it was then celebrated every seven days and coincided

thence rest}

with the phases of the moon.


scription of rest,

Much

later,

the pre-

which had been merely secondary and


its

accessory in the primitive Sabbath, became


essence,

very

and was

justified

by the legend

of God's rest

on

the seventh day.

Again, at the time of the Prophets, the

Hebrews were
'

intent

upon

differentiating their rites

from

The proof has not yet been given that the days called sabattu by the Babylonians were the 7th, 14th, 21st and 28th of the month. On the other hand, M. Pinches has recently published a text which would seem to show that the fifteenth day of the month, that of full moon, was sapattu (cf. E. Schiirer, Zeitschrift fiir neutestamentliche
Wissenschaft, 1905, p. 14).

THE HEBRAIC SABBATH


single source.

171

those of the Babylonians, though both sprang from a

The custom gained ground


month,

of celebrating

the Sabbath every seven days without respect to the

day

of

the

and an attempt

never
If

entirely

successful

was
of

anxious character.

made to obliterate its gloomy and The plan seems clearly indicated in
(Iviii.

two verses and


shalt

Isaiah

13-14)

'
:

thou

call
;

the Sabbath a delight, the holy of the Lord, honourable

honour

thyself in the Lord.'

him then shalt thou The recommendation to turn the


. . .

delight

Sabbath into a day


in

of happiness or joy has its counterpart

modem

custom, which attributes the same cheerful

character to the
civilisations it

New Year whereas

in primitive Semitic

was eminently a

critical

day, reserved for

propitiatory ceremonies.

happy in his attempt to explain God's rest on the seventh day by a comparison with the Babylonian myths of the creation. To all
Mr. Jastrow seems to
less

me

appearances, the tradition

may

be satisfactorily explained

as the reflection of an old ritual, enjoining rest

upon the

Sabbath, and a childish attempt to explain that ritual

by a

legend.

Without rejecting
fights

this simple solution, Mr.

Jastrow observes that, in the Babylonian Genesis, the

god Marduk
;

and overcomes Tiamat and the

genii of

the storm after which his anger is appeased, for the enemies
of the cosmic order are vanquished, as the Titans

were

vanquished by Jupiter.
in the Biblical Genesis,

In the beginning, then, God's rest,

would have been the placation


it

of

the divine wrath, after

had issued

victorious from the

fiery struggle against the

unchained elements of Chaos.

'

profound study on the origin of the week and the adoption of a

cycle of seven days in the ancient world has been published

by E.

Schiirer,

Zeitschrift fur die neutestamentliche Wissenschaft, 1905, pp. 1-71.

CHAPTER

XII

THE SENTIMENT OF MODESTY


In the eighteenth century, when those inquiring
debated the origin of modesty
questions was
covered.
time,
I

spirits

in

Madame

d'Epinay's

salon/ the modern historical method of approaching these


still,

to

all

intents
is

and purposes, undiswritten.

fortiori,

the same

true of St. Augustine's

and on no subject has a stranger farrago been

speak from experience


it

for

there was a time

when

studied

myself,

and even contemplated a substantial

volume.

Those were the days when

fed
;

on Kant,

Greek, and Latin


as
of

had no suspicion that such a thing ethnical psychology existed. I had framed a theory my own, which owed much to St. Augustine and here
I
1

give the passage from

Madame's Memoires

'

The Prince

But

did people come to fight shy of an action which is at once so natural, so necessary, and so general ?- Saint-Lambert : And so Duclos : Because desire is a sort of taking possession. A pleasant
!

how

just as a dog who passionate man must always monopolise a woman has snatched a bone carries it in his mouth until he can devour it in a corner, and, while he is devouring it, keeps turning his head and growling for fear anyone should take it from him. Jealousy is the seed of Others, in the eighteenth century, regarded modesty as modesty.' coquetry in a mask others, again, saw in it with Parny That happy art of hiding ugliness Which wears the magic title Chastity.' These amorous futilities seem rather out of date to a reader of Lubbock
: ;

'

and Frazer.
172

THE SENTIMENT OF MODESTY


is

173
of of

the

summary

made

ne varietur

'
:

The narrative
is full

Genesis, a reflection of old Chaldrean traditions,

obscurity with regard to the circumstances of the Fall,

but has clearly shown


birth
of

its

consequences

namely, the
sentiment

the a
is

sentiment

of

modesty.

This

implies

whole system of metaphysics and morals.


the stigma of the
first fall
^

Modesty

a mark pointing as
Lake Regillus

clearly to extra-temporal sin

as did the hoof prints of the

horses of Castor and Pollux on the rocks of


to the intervention of the

Dioscuri in the victory of


is

Roman

freedom.

Modesty

the eternal curse uttered

by the higher against the


the unconscious,
free,

lower,

a cry of
herself

by the conscious against shame from a soul that is not

and

feels
rules.'

responsible for the senses over

which she
I

apologise for resuscitating a page which


I

thought

very beautiful when

wrote
I

it

at the age of

twenty

though
all,

I
is

am
not

thankful to say

did not publish

it.

After

it

much more absurd than Schopenhauer's


modesty
'
:

famous

definition of

The shame and remorse


earth.'

inseparable from the acts and organs which perpetuate


life

and human

suffering

on the

All these ideas

are false because they are a priori


of morals

and the
I

historical
is

and ignore the evolution development of humanity.


!

Outside history there


In 1880

no salvation
friend of

had a young

some note

(one of the

philosophic lights of the nineteenth century, in fact)

poor
I sent

Guyau,

who

wrote

'

L'irreligion
I

de

I'avenir.'

him

my
me

dissertation,

and

should

like,

at this

point, to quote a few lines

from the long reply with which


of the question, I

he honoured

'
:

Going to the root

cannot agree with your theory of modesty.


'

You seem

An

old idea revived

by Kant and Schopenhauer.

174

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
this virtue,

to attach

supreme importance to
the highest
inferior

which you
it
is

consider

of

all.

To

my

thinking,
is

immeasurably
end in nature
use
If
it

to

love.

Modesty

simply

a
its

species of armour, indicative of


is to

war between

the sexes ;

prevent a blind promiscuity.

But
.

to
. ,

as a

means

of

damning love

is

a great mistake.

matter

in

other words, the

body

is

what divides

souls,

then, in spite of the seeming paradox,

we may

define love as that state in which the


insignificance
soul.

and the

barriers fade

body shrinks into away between soul and


!

You are a materialist without knowing it Thus Guyau himself, in his search for a theory
'
.

of

modesty, took the sentiment as


guileless correspondent

it

exists to-day.

Like his

he never dreamt of asking himself,

what

prehistoric
it

phantom, what terror of the superstitious

savage, gave

birth.

Less philosophic than Guyau, but more inclined to

the historical method (he was a highly gifted journalist

and a great

traveller), Gabriel

Charmes wrote
It

to

me from
much

Cairo about the

same time

'
:

should not attach so

importance to modesty as you.

seems a very bold

proceeding to build up a whole system of philosophy on so

dubious a sentiment.

Renan somewhere

calls

modesty
it is

" a charming equivocation."

Equivocation or no,

far

too

artificial

a thing to have to be explained by a blank


I

denial of the deepest instincts of our nature.

very

much

doubt

if
;

it

existed

when the

first

communities were

formed

and even yet there are surroundings and countries in which I can detect no trace of it. Did the
?

old Egyptians experience the feeling

One would hardly


see the absolute

think

so, to

look at their

monuments and

unconsciousness with which their bare-bosomed

women

went about

in clinging transparent dresses that revealed


THE SENTIMENT OF MODESTY
the minutest bodily details.
live

175

To-day, even, the Fellahin


quite

crowded together

in the starkest nakedness,

regardless of differences of sex.


veil their faces

True,

some

of the
;

women
is

when they
I

see a stranger

but this

virtually confined to the towns,

where

civilisation

has
is

ousted nature.

do not believe that modesty

protection of the weaker sex against the natural


instinct.
I

human
man's

believe that, originally,


less

it

was a case

of

tyranny imposing a more or

thorough-going reserve

on

woman simply
not
bear

because his sense of proprietorship

could

that

what had been

his

should
Later,

lie

exposed to the covetousness of a

rival.

this

masculine demand becajne a rooted womanly instinct,

thanks to the progress of morality and the refining


influences
of
love.

But the " equivocation

"

is

soon

by a sojourn among absolutely primitive or even partially civilised races. One of the things that have struck me most, since I came to the East, is the remarkable freedom of word and action which you can
dissipated

use to

women

of the

world in these undeveloped countries.

In appearance they are

much the same as Western women

but talk with them and you find that the very warmest compliments to their beauty will not even raise a blush.

And mind

you,

it is

not vice

only natural simplicity


It

Oriental ignorance of European prejudices.

seems to

modesty back to the source, and show how, little by httle, under the influence of a purer light and a changed atmosphere, this
it

me

that

would be quite

feasible to trace

delicate flower has

But grant
would

that,

budded and blossomed in our souls. alone and unaided, it has thrown out in
I

the soul those roots which


it

believe to be artificial
is the timidity of the

what

prove

Modesty

body and

nothing

else.

The

timidity of the

body and the shyness

176

CULTS, MYTHS.

AND RELIGIONS
Because the body only
it

of the soul are strictly analogous.

gives

itself

with reserve, does


all
?

it

follow that

has no right

to give itself at

Does not the soul

also veil herself,

and only unveil


communications

in love or friendship, or in those intimate of the artist,

when he
?

reveals his heart

and mind
beings

to the outside world

We

are such imperfect

so unworthy of an

intelligent creation

that the

free exercise of our

most legitimate

instincts

would lead

to a condition of appalling anarchy.

For

this reason life

has schooled us to curb those instincts by the help of moral


ideas

and

sensible impressions,

which

may and

often do

assume an absolute and


many

intrinsic value in our eyes,

but

on a nearer scrutiny have only the importance


might be swept by the untrammelled
unsuited to
its

of so

precautions against the dangers into which


activities of a

we

nature

environment.'

In

these noble

pages

of

Gabriel

congratulate myself on disinterring

Charmes and I them from my papers


First

there

are two, or rather three, distinct ideas.

comes an eighteenth-century theory, false like all the psychological theories of that time, which would make

modesty a
to which

restraint

imposed by the jealousy


the timidity of the body

of the

male

then follows a

much more
is

valuable suggestion, according


;

modesty

while finally

we have
taboos.

a very distinct recognition of the evolution of

the sentiment.

But Gabriel Charmes had never heard

of

In 1880 that all-essential idea

had not yet swum


To-day the

into the full current of contemporary thought.

most insignificant

of anthropologists

would approach these

great problems of the past and present with a surer step.

In a book by Herr Ernst Grosse, published in 1894,1


1

Ernst Grosse, Die Anfaenge der Kunst, Freiburg

u. Leipzig,

1894,

pp. 89>?.

THE SENTIMENT OF MODESTY


I

177

find a theory

which
first

though

it is

not

new

he appears

to

have been the

work
is

art as a social

The root idea of the phenomenon and a social function


to de\'elop.

borrowed from Guyau.

In his

fifth

chapter, the author

sketches the history of personal decoration and ornament,

with special reference to the tattoo.


able

Passing to
primitive

'

move-

ornaments,'

he

asks

if

the

loin-cloth

originated in the sentiment of modesty or the reverse.

In this connection he quotes the evidence of travellers


as to the total absence of

modesty among the Fuegians


'

and Botocudos, together with Man's verdict on the


cincture

worn by

certain

Andaman women

evidently as
similar

decoration

not
go

veil.'

Bulmer passes a

opinion upon the loin-cloths of the Australian


*

women.

In Australia,' says Brough

Smyth

again,

'

even where

the
girls

two

sexes

completely

naked,

the

unmarried

wear an apron, which they discard as soon as

they have found a husband.


quite nude
;

The women
belt

are generally
indecent
to

it

is

only

before

beginning their
of

dances that they put on


the knee.'
1

feathers

reaching

From
that the

these
first

and

similar texts,

Herr Grosse concludes

garment, far from being an attempt to

satisfy the sentiment of

modesty, was simply a decoration

of the sexual organs in the

hope

of

drawing attention to

them.

This explains the curious custom of the Australian

women,

who

dress

themselves

for

their

dances.
'

It

seems the

women

of the Mincopies

do the same.

Thus

the primitive garment was originally not a veil but an


1 In Central Australia the women hang any trinkets they may have got from the whites on the front of their bodies, and the men often hang a piece of white shell on the hair of the pubis, more with the idea of attracting attention than of concealing their nakedness
'

'

{L' Anthropologic, 1897, p. 361).

178

CULTS, MYTHS,
;

AND RELIGIONS

ornament

which, hke the most ornaments, was intended

to attract the favour of the opposite sex to the wearer.'

And

so,

by a

circuitous route, the

German Darwinist

comes back to one


century
:

of the favourite theses of the eighteenth


is

that coquetry

the mother of modesty.


is, it

Ingenious as the theory


It

will

not bear examination.

may

certainly be admitted that a primitive aversion,


in

founded on religious prejudice, might


a reasoned aversion, seeking to

time become

justify itself

on moral

grounds.
incest.

This

is

the case with the horror inspired by


is

But

to believe that evolution


its

capable of trans-

forming a sentiment into

opposite,

and
is,

of
I

making
think,

modesty spring from self-advertisement,


pushing boldness to extremes.

In the same way, a whole

school of psychologists has assayed to explain altruism


as an evolution of egoism.

But, here again, the method


of altruism,

seems mistaken
is

for

sympathy, the principle

a primitive sentiment which

may

be the natural and


sight of suffering

immediate

result of reflex action

the

producing suffering, just as the sight of joy produces joy.


Besides, without in the least considering the
as a degenerate,

modern savage
be slow to

we may doubt
facts
:

the primitive character of


all,

Herr Grosse's

above

we

shall

make them
whole
of

the basis of conclusions applicable to the

mankind.

has grown out of a tahoo.

Our conviction remains that the sentiment of modesty The only very old tradition
for its origin

which seeks to account


Mosaic books

the tradition of the


;

gives

it

a religious setting
of

and even

in

pagan antiquity the ideas


closely connected.
^

modesty and
of the

religion are

As to the nature

taboo from
in his

theory

still

in3,intained in 1891

by M. Schurtz,

Gnmd-

ziige einer

Philosophie der Tracht.

THE SENTIMENT OF MODESTY


which modesty M. Durkheim
exactitude of
yet, in
^

179

is

derived,

do not dare to say that


it

has solved the question by seeing in


:

particular application of the taboo of blood

still
is

his

mind has suggested a

solution,
se,

which

as

my

opinion, the

most probable per

and the

least

open to
'

fatal objections.

See his Monograph, reprinted from the Annie Sociologique, Paris,

1S98, pp. 1-70.

CHAPTER

XIII
^

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


MiTHRA, the personification
ancient Persian rehgion
;

of Light,

was a god

of the

and we have proof that more


That place was not the

than

five

hundred years before the Christian era he held a


in the divine hierarchy stood other

place in the Persian Pantheon.


first
:

above him

and

more potent gods, notably the Heaven (Ahura-Mazda, Ormuzd) and the feminine deity Anahita (Anaitis) Earth

or Water.

Even
from

in those

remote days Mithra was distinguished


:

his fellow-gods

His very name,

good truth,
which

by one estimable quality goodness. means the friend. And, in he was the friend and benefactor of man. In
in Persian,

the Zend-Avesta, or Persian Bible,


is

the

actual text of

post-Christian, but contains liturgical elements

of far higher antiquity,

we have a hymn that


'
:

shows us

Mithra with outstretched hands, weeping and saying to


the great god Ahura-Mazda
of
""

am

the good protector


all creatures.'

all

creatures

am

the good saviour of

Conference at the Musee Guimet.

Needless to say,

am

under

I have also borrowed largely great obligations to M. Cumont's work. sometimes textually from the articles of M. Jean Reville on the same subject e.g. Revue de I'histoire des religions, 1901, p. 184 ; and

iLtudes en

hommage

a la FaciiUe de Montauban, 1901, p. 339.

180


THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM
To play
alert,

i8i

this beneficent part,

which corresponds to that


Mithra must be ever

of Apollo

and the Dioscuri

in Greece,

every ready to succour the victims of injustice and


the and overcome the enemies of mankind god is at the same time a warrior-god, uncon:

to fight
friendly

quered and unconquerable.


runs
'
:

Another
is

hymn He
:

of the

Avesta

Mithra, whose foot


all

ever

lifted, is

a wakeful god,
is

and watcheth
grass to grow,
of

things unceasingly.

strong, but

he heareth the complaint of the

weak

he maketh the

and he governeth the earth. He is begotten he is armed with wisdom, and no man deceiveth him
:

the strength of a thousand.'

James Darmesteter, in comparing the conceptions of Mithra and Apollo, makes the very just observation that
the Greeks mainly developed the aesthetic side of Apollo
;

while the Persians, more sensitive in matters of conscience,

emphasised the moral aspect of Mithra.


Light became, to
its

votaries,

The all-seeing the emblem of truth


:

Mithra was the

celestial incarnation of conscience.

It is

obvious that even a secondary god, conceived under such


attributes,

was by the nature

of things destined to play a


:

great part in the history of religious ideas


divinity with a future.

he was a

But,

if

Mithra played such a part,

it

was not

solely in

his capacity as

god

of the kindly light


:

and the moral

truth which
cipal

it

symbolises

an additional

reason was that he


chill earth,

perhaps, prinas a mediator.

was considered

Descending from heaven and the stars of heaven to this


dark and
Light
is

essentially a mediatress

a celestial ray travelling without a break from the hearth


of all brightness

and warmth towards our unquiet and


which,

suffering

humanity,

evening

after

evening,

is

menaced by the

hostile

shadow

of night, and,

day

after

i82

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
Mithra

day, by storm clouds big with gloom and terrors. the Mediator

was nearer to the hearts of men and had a surer hold


on human affection than other more powerful but more distant and inaccessible deities. If Christianity conquered the world, was her conquest not largely due to the
conception of a Mediator between

/ieo-tV'/;'?

the Greeks afterwards called him

God and man, and

to
it

that of a host of mediators, the saints, whose charge


is

to lay at the feet of the supreme Divinity the prayers


of mortals
?

and thanksgivings
to
diffusion.

That conception existed

already in the old Persian creed, and no doubt contributed


its

Another, and perfectly natural, result

was that the

figure of Mithra

assumed more and more


faithful,

importance in the eyes of the


dethroning the higher divinities
place in the everyday Ufe

and

without
If

gradually

took their

and worship

of the people.

we had more documents bearing on the early history of Mithraism, we should find in them a lesson of immense significance, and one which is wholly creditable to human
nature
:

the spectacle of a naturalistic polytheism slowly

transformed
simplification

by a moral idea, until the process and concentration ends in a single god
B.C.,

of of

pity

and love. About the year 400

perhaps even

earlier,

Persian

Mithraism began to spread both towards the valley of the


Tigris

and Euphrates and towards the mountainous


In the Hellenic or Hellenistic portions of this

region which constitutes the north-eastern part of Asia

Minor.

latter country, its progress

was

distinctly slower
deities

but

there

it

found the cults of other native


for instance

Men and
more or

Adonis-Atys,

which

were foreign to the


it

old Greek Pantheon.


less closely,

With these

allied itself

and assimilated a few

of their characteristics.

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


In Babylonia, on the other hand,
it

183

felt

the influence of

Chaldaean astrology, and gathered a cumbrous load of


pseudo-scientific

conceptions which either obscured or

completely hid the noble and beneficent moral idea which

was

its

surest passport to the heart of nations.


is

From
joined

East to West the progress of Mithraism

that of a river,
is

which, flowing from a source of crystal purity,

by a crowd
swells, the

of tributary streams

the more

its

volume
its

more the

foreign elements that float with


its

current and sully the limpidity of

waters.

At the time
end
of the

of the great upheavals

which marked the


But,

Roman republic,

Mithraism had already reached

the eastern shores of the Mediterranean.

by now,

Mithra was no longer the light that mediates between

The idea of mediation, immanent in his very conception, was not lost, and was destined to persist to the end but, once he became the god par excellence, the tendency was to identify him with the Sun. Such, at least, was Strabo's view, about the beginning
heaven and man.
;

of the Christian era.


pirates, against

Plutarch

tells

us that the Cihcian

whom Pompey
;

conducted his victorious

campaign, were devotees of Mithra.


quered pirates were executed

Not

all

the conto

numbers were reduced

slavery and sold in Italy, where

doubt

discreetly enough, no they introduced the worship of the new god and
seems impossible, however, that the diffusion of

the respect due to his name.


It

Mithraism throughout the

Roman Empire one

of the

most extraordinary events


be attributed
pirates.

in the history of religion

can

solely to the

enslavement of the Cilician


less

Two more
was the

powerful agencies of a

ephemeral

nature came into play just before the

dawn

of Christianity.

The

first

recruiting of auxiliaries for the

Roman

i84

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
of Asia Minor,

legions in the poor

and mountainous parts

which, centuries before, had given in their allegiance to

Mithraism.

Apart from the great gods

of the

Graeco-

Roman
work

Pantheon, the dissemination of whose cult was the

of schoolmasters

and

rhetoricians, the only divinities

worshipped from one end of the empire to the other were


those adopted by the legions.
deities, there is

Thus, of

all

the Celtic

but one whose monuments and inscriptions

are found in every country from England to the


of

mouths
of

the

Danube
It
;

Epona,
was her

the

protecting

goddess

horses.

was her name the


it

Celtic cavalry of the

empire

invoked

and

cult they spread

wherever war,
to pitch their

or the calls of service,


tents.

summoned them

Apart from the


propagation of

soldiers, the principal agents for

the
first

new gods were

the slaves.

In the
after

century of the empire

Rome waged war

war

in

the east of Antolia and on the confines of Persia.


result, the district

As a

became a happy hunting-ground for the Roman slave-dealer, eager to buy his human wares in a part of Asia which had long been characterised by
gentler

manners than were prevalent

in the

north and
slaves,

west of Europe.

While the Gaulish and German


no

muscular and inured to fatigue, were sent to farms and

workshops where they exercised next to

influence
in the

on

their masters, the Asiatics

found employment

towns, entered the private service of the citizens, and


frequently
to their

by sheer personal ascendancy converted them


religious beliefs.

own

Juvenal complains that


Syrus in

Orontes had become a tributary of Tiber


Tiherim defluxit Orontes

but

if

we except Epona, whose


for,

solitary success has already

been accounted

he has

not a word to say of an invasion of

Rome by

Germanic,

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


Iberian, or Gaulish divinities.

185

accident, nor to the

This was due neither to more active commercial relations

between Italy and the East, but simply to the intellectual


superiority of the Oriental slaves,

who wormed

their

way
by

into the intimacy of these masters of the earth, and,

example and conversation, won them to

alien

faiths.

Who
and

can

tell

what was the part played by Syrian hand-

maidens

in

the propagation of Christianity at

Rome,

in the

conversion of such great families as the Graecini


?

and Glabriones

In the reign of Trajan, about a century after Christ,

Mithraism began to take

its

place as a great religious

power, especially on the banks of the


the

Danube

a part of
Ninety
initiated
of

empire which in consequence of the Dacian wars

had been flooded by troops of every nationality. years later the Emperor Commodus was himself
into the mysteries of

Mithra, and

by the end
its

the

second century of the empire, there was not a part of


the

Roman

world where Mithraism had not


it

votaries.

In the third and fourth centuries

continued to spread,

despite the competition of adolescent Christianity.

For
its

a moment, the conversion of Constantine


course
;

stemmed
century

then came the pagan reaction under Julian,


of energy.

and another outburst

In the

fifth

it

disappeared along with paganism in general, but not

without leaving profound traces in the minds of the


Eastern populations.
the
Its

fundamental ideas survive

in

Persian dualism, and in Manichaeism

new form

of that dualism, which, almost to the eve of the Protestant

Reformation, remained the most dangerous enemy of


orthodoxy.

Belgian scholar, M. Franz Cumont, has recently


all

published a couple of volumes giving

the

monuments

i86

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
statues,

of the cult of Mithra


tions,

bas-reliefs,

and

inscrip-

together

with

an exhaustive collection of the

Greek,
If,

Roman, and
interest

Oriental texts bearing on the subject.

unfortunately for us, the texts are scarce and say least
is

where the

greatest, the

monuments, on the
:

other hand, are extremely numerous

in

Rome

alone,

nearly two hundred have been found.

Nor were those

who
and

dedicated them drawn exclusively from the lower


:

classes, soldiers or slaves

often they were

men

of
in

rank
the

distinction, high officials

who had graduated

schools of the philosophers.

In fact, there soon sprang

up a

sort of alliance

between the half-mystic Graeco-Roman

philosophy, prevalent during the later centuries of the

empire, and this popular religion in which contemporary

metaphysic saw

or

thought

it

saw

reflection of its
it

own
sects

principles.

About the third century

seemed as

though the old and thorny barriers between the ancient

and
and

Stoics

Platonists, Pythagoreans, Peripatetics, Epicureans, were breaking down under the influence of a
light,

syncretism which placed the Sun, as the fount of strength


at

the head of

its

ontological

conceptions.

The

deities of

Olympus

lived, as

they

live to-day,

on paper

but the Sun, to


beautiful

whom
in

Aurelian, in 270, erected the most

temple

Rome,

dominated

religion

and

philosophy herself in their decline.

Only, to the philo-

sophic eye, the sun shining in the firmament was but a symbol of the heavenly light which beams upon the
hearts and minds of men.

In 362 the
:

Emperor Julian

wrote to the Alexandrians

'

Are you blind to the


?

splendour which issues from the Sun


that

Are you ignorant

He gives life to all animals and all plants ? This Sun that humanity has seen and honoured from all eternity, whose worship is the source of happiness, is the

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


living
Intelligible Father.'

187

image, animate, rational, and beneficent, of the

Mithra, then, was identified with the sun, whose light

he had personified

in the beginning.

But Graeco-Roman
Accordingly,

paganism was already familiar with another sun-god,


Helios,

whom

it

was impossible

to depose.

he was relegated to the position of an intimate friend of


Mithra
day.

who even took over the luminous chariot of the


We
do not know what legend, of what poet, dealt
;

with the situation


century, Mithra
is

but, in a Greek author of the fifth


;

described as Phaethon

which proves

that not only had he

become the favourite of Helios, but had temporarily replaced him as driver of the solar chariot.
This short address
Mithraic religion as
difficult,
is

no place
it.

for a set account of the

we know

The

subject

is

peculiarly

and even M. Cumont's erudition has not been

wholly successful in lighting up the obscurities.


shall content ourselves

We

with a few general indications,

every one of which might furnish material for prolonged


discussion.

Mithra was a young god, beautiful as the

day, who, clothed in Phrygian garb, sojourned of old

among men and won

their love

by doing good.

He was

born of no mortal mother.

One

day, in a grotto or stable,

he issued from a stone, to the astonishment of the shepherds

who

alone were present at his birth.

Waxing

in

strength and courage, he overcame the pestilent creatures


that infested the world.

Most redoubtable of these was


if

a bull, himself divine, whose blood,

shed upon the

ground, would render


crops to spring.
victory,

it

fruitful

and cause miraculous


this

Mithra gave him battle, gained the

plunged a knife into his breast, and by

sacrifice assured riches

and peace to men.


still

cended into Heaven, where he

Then he askeeps watch over the

i88

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
them that
initiated into his mysteries,
first

children of earth.

He

grants the petitions of

pray to him.
in caverns

Those who are

hke that where he

saw the day, receive


tranquillity of the

after death his powerful protection against those enemies

beyond the tomb who threaten the


dead.
life,

Furthermore, he

will

one day give to them a better

and has promised a


celestial bull,

resurrection.

When
and

the fate-

appointed time comes round, he


another
the source of

will cut
life

the throat of
felicity,

whose

blood shall revive the flagging energies of earth and


restore a
life

of happiness to all

who have

believed on

Mithra.
It
is

obvious that

the creed of Mithra had

many
;

elements in

common
of

with Christianity.

There must also


for

have been others


Tertullian,

which we have no cognisance

writing about the year 200, attributed the

resemblance
artifice of

a
'

dangerous one to simple souls

to
*

an

the devil.

Apart from points


in the

of doctrine, there

were equally striking analogies

domains

of cult

and
little

ritual.

The

Mithraists,' says

M. Reville,

met

in

sanctuaries

hewn out

of rock or under ground,

where the number

of worshippers

was necessarily limited

precisely
the

as

was

the case in the catacombs.


aisle,

At the
for

entrance of the nave, or central


holy

were receptacles

water used

in

lustrations.

multitude of

lamps, arranged along the side galleries, or hung from the


vault,

threw a

brilliant light

on the centre

of the shrine.

Decorations in painted stucco or mosaic, vivid colours,

images and statues of gods, were about


while before the central effigy of
bull in act to be slain
petually.'
all,

in great profusion

which represented a
per-

by Mithra, a lamp burned


the

Initiation
tests

into

mysteries
ascetic

of

the
;

god

involved

of

severely

character

and

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


these preliminary rites were called sacramenta

189

sacra-

ments.
of a bull

One
;

them was baptism by blood the blood and there was also a baptism by pure water, as
of

well as anointings of the forehead with honey.


it

Further,

was the custom to consecrate bread and wine

by

certain

formulae,

and then

to

distribute the
of

elements

among
chief

the

faithful.

Members
was
of the

the

Mithraic

communities

took the

name

of Brethren,

and

at their

head was a

whose

title

Father.

These

coincidences
easily
less

which
them

deserve to be better

known

could

be multiplied.

The Fathers

Church were not

struck by

than the pagans themselves.

Saint Augustine relates that

one day he had a conversation with a priest of Mithra,

who

told

noticeable that, although Tertullian

him they adored the same god. Now, it is had to bring in the

malignity of the devil in order to explain the resemblance

between Mithraism and Christianity, no Christian writer


ever thought of claiming that Mithraism was borrowed

The reason must have been that they knew the legend and ritual of Mithra to be chronofrom Christianity.
logically anterior to the preaching of Christianity.

This

fact

may

be taken as certain.

It

cannot, indeed, be

established from the documentary evidence

we

possess,

but the argument from the silence of the Church Fathers


is

conclusive enough.

On

the other hand, the

Emperor

Julian,

who was

initiated into the mysteries of Mithra,


is

and whose aversion to Christianity


sacred traditions from Mithraism.
I

well known, never


its

accused Christianity of having borrowed

doctrine or

We

should do well,

think, to imitate this discretion, leave the

word

plagiar-

ism alone, and attribute the startling likeness between


the two religions to one influence operating identically on

both

the influence of those old conceptions which, dating

igo

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
than the literary legends
hold
their

from a period undoubtedly


of

earlier

paganism,

yet

retained

on the masses

throughout the ancient world, and constituted a mystic

environment which conditioned the form of Christianity

and Mithraism
It
its

alike.
if

has often been said that,

Mithraism had not found


it

path blocked by Christianity,

would have become the


This
is

sole religion of the ancient world.

true enough

but

in

speaking of the struggle between Christianity

and paganism, we are apt to make two great mistakes. The first lies in believing that Christianity, in the days of travail when it strove for the dominion of souls, had
for its principal or only

adversary the paganism of

Homer

and

Virgil

the gods of Olympus.


;

The gods
and
in

of

Olympus
republic.
still

were dead, or practically dead

that condition

they had languished since the end

of

the

Temples

still

rose in their honour, sacrifices were

paid

them

but
to

man had
love
still

ceased to believe in them, for he had

ceased

them.

The residuum

of

piety

which

clung to them

was purely

intellectual.

On

the other

hand, by the time when Juvenal complained that Orontes

was flowing

into Tiber, the gods of Asia


in

and Egypt had


it

found numerous devotees

Rome

and

may

be said

that, at the close of the second century, these Oriental cults,

with Mithraism at their head, were the only serious rivals


of

Christianity.

If
it

the latter conquered,

it

was un-

doubtedly because
all

was

infinitely freer

than they from


Christianity
it

taint of

dead or dying polytheism.


of

was

grafted
all

upon the old trunk


all

Judaism, but

refused

solidarity,

connection, with the deities of those

nations upon
shed.
Its
it

whom

the light of the true

God had not been


its

exclusiveness, the cause of the persecutions

which

endured, was also the cause of

triumph.

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


Whereas
Mithraism
reconciled

191

Helios

with

Mithra,

identified Jupiter with the

supreme god

of the Persians,

and made room


proudly rejected

for Diana, Eros,

and others
all

of the old

Olympic hierarchy, Christianity disdained


all

syncretism,

compromise, and gave to the world

what the world most needed


gaged from
all ties

an

Oriental religion disencults, sullied as

with the ancient

they

were by their long alliance with paganism.

The second widespread


battle between Christianity
of

error

is

the belief

that

the

and paganism was a battle


of

morality

against

immorality,

chastity

against

lust, of

humanity and

affection against cruelty


of the
;

and

sel-

fishness.

The Fathers

Church have unquestionably


but, in the heat of conflict,
their

made men do not always measure


the claim at times

words.

Political

warfare

is

often unscrupulous enough, but a religious

controversy breeds every form of calumny.

By way

of

example, one

significant

fact

may

be mentioned.

In

the twelfth and thirteenth centuries,

when the Church

was
or

engaged in a merciless struggle with the Manichaeans of

France

the heretics known under the name of Catharists Albigenses was everywhere said that the luckless
it

wretches, whose flesh was feeding the flames, were given


to nameless debaucheries,
profligacy.

and examples

of the blackest

Now,
of

in the instructions

drawn up by the

inquisitors

the day for the benefit of their young


copies have fortunately survived

pupils
is

and
this

some

it

formally stated that these accusations were unfounded

and that no evidence


Still,

them had ever been forthcoming. did not prevent the Church from using them
of

in order to excite
heretics.

the popular conscience


of
fact, it is

against

the

As a matter

not necessary to look

very closely to see that

the charges of licentiousness.

192

CULTS, MYTHS,
sacrifice,

AND RELIGIONS
levelled

human

and general turpitude,

by

sect

against sect, or
valueless.
historical

by orthodoxy against heresy, are totally They are weapons in an unfair campaign, not
to Mithraism,
it is

documents.

With regard
Christian

remarkable that the


it

polemists
against

who mention
its

bring no definite
that,

accusation

morality.

They only say


rite

as initiation into the Mithraic mysteries took place in the

gloom
better

of a cavern,

it

was probable the


people

contained

obscene

elements

for

who

love

darkness

than light usually have good reason for their

preference.

it

The argument is feeble and unconvincing. Moreover, exactly what the pagans were bound to say when they saw the Christians gathering together in the catacombs and it is what the Church says to-day of the Knights Templar and Freemasons, who exclude the
is
;

public from their ceremonies.


Christianity could hardly have

had occasion

to

combat
it

the immorality of Mithraism

for

we may take

that

the two religions had virtually the same moral code, and
in this point

resembled each other even more closely than

in tradition, liturgy,

and

ritual.

Mithraism,
tinence

according

to as

Porphyry,
in

imposed

con-

and
the

sometimes,
After

Christianity,

absolute
like
is

continence.

observing

that

Mithraism,

Christianity, celebrated the oblation of bread,

that

to

say,

communion,
crowned
its

professed

the

doctrine

of

resurrection,

followers with the

same crown
its

wherewith the martyrs


tullian

for the faith

were crowned, Ter-

adds

'
:

Further, Mithraism prohibits


;

supreme

pontiff

from marrying more than once


to continence.'

it

has virgins and

men vowed

Hahet

et

virgincs, hahet et

THE MORALITY OF MTTHRAISM


continentes.

193

This statement, coming from an


is

enemy

of

the creed,

definitive.

For the ideas of brotherhood prevailing among the


Mithraists

we have
:

certain proof in the


fratres,

gave themselves monies of


of them,

consacranei.

names which they The very cere-

initiation,

from the sHght knowledge we possess

seem to have aimed at emphasising and testing


as well as their self-restraint
fasts,

the submission of the initiates to their spiritual head, the

Father

their fortitude in

enduring

physical suffering
their

and

inclemency of

weather

and

courage,

when confronted with


Here

apparently imminent
again

and threatening dangers.

we may draw our own


If
if

conclusion from the silence of

Tertullian.

the Mithraic doctrine had contained impure

elements,

the teaching given to the initiates had not


ideal,

been inspired by a high moral

would he have

neglected the opportunity of insisting on the intrinsic


superiority of Christianity,

attention to the part


similarity
of the

when he had already drawn played by the devil in the outward


religions
?

two
:

But more remains

we know from the most competent


as

of all authorities, Julian the Apostate, that Mithraism

had a dogmatic and imperative morality, such Graeco-Roman paganism never had. At the end
beautiful work,
'

the

of that

The

Caesars,'

which shows us the

Roman

Emperors passing before the judgment-seat


and concludes with the
the
glorification of

of the gods

Marcus Aurelius,
*
:

Philosopher-Emperor writes as follows

"

thee," said Mercury, addressing himself to me, " I

As to have
thee

caused thee to
to

observe his

know Mithra thy father. commandments [evroXai),

It is for

that so thou

mayest have
this
life,

him an assured port and refuge in and that, when thy time is come to quit
in

194

CULTS. MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
hope,

the world, thou

may est,
'

with a sweet

take this

god

for guide."
is

This

evidently an allusion to Julian's initiation into


;

Mithraism

but

it is

something

else,

and something more.

Mithra has become the father of Julian,

who obeys

his

commandments.
a moral law
effect.
?

What are these commandments, if not And obedience to them is to have a double
life

On

the one hand, while

lasts,

Julian,

by

conforming to the behests of Mithra, will achieve happiness

gently with

by the way of wisdom on the other, death will deal him and a glorious immortality be assured
;

him

as a

recompense

for his virtues.

Are we not here


?

in the full current of Christian

thought

The
those

feeling

is

more pronounced than ever when we


life

study Julian's short and beautiful

by the
tale.

light of

many documents

that

tell

the

We
his

must

have the grace to forget for

moment

struggle

against Christianity, a struggle which was never violent.

We must have the


Christian
(I

candour to

realise
its

how much was

truly

use the word in

highest and

if

may
life

venture to say so

its

most philosophic

sense) in a

which from beginning to end was consecrated to the love


of

wisdom, the love of country, and the love of humanity.


list

In the long

of Christian kings

and keysars there is none,

with the exception perhaps of

St. Louis,

who has shown


itself,

on the steps

of the throne,

and on the throne


or

more

constancy, more abnegation,


Julian.

more clemency, than

He
'
:

loved to repeat the saying of the ancient sage

Pittacus

Forgiveness

is

better than vengeance,' and he

was not slow


'

to act on the precept.

Writing against the

false philosopher, Heraclius, Julian asks

him with emotion

What

hast thou done great in thy


in his struggle for justice
?

life ?

Whom

hast

thou aided

Whose

tears didst

THE MORALITY OF MITHRAISM


thou dry when he wept
not an
evil either for
?

195
is

teaching him that death

that outUve him.'

him who dies or for the An hour would soon be


and
his heart.

loved ones
gone,
if

tried to collect all the passages in Julian's writings that

do honour to
of Mithra

his character

Now

this

man

was a worshipper of the Sun-god, an adept in the mysteries


;

and the moral law which governed


the

his

thought

and action was not simply that of ancient ethics, but


primarily

code taught him by his initiator into


that point the unequivocal terms of the

Mithraism.

On

passage
I

have quoted leave no doubt.


to

draw a natural enough conclusion from the preceding remarks that morahty is independent
had intended
:

of religion, but that every religion, at


its

some moment

of

evolution, adopts
I

of its day.

and assimilates the current morality remembered, however, reading something

similar in one of Anatole France's delightful

and
My
:

pro-

found

books,

'

Le

Mannequin
anything
its

d'Osier.'

search

was rewarded by the following passage, which seemed


infinitely preferable to
'

could say

Every period has

ruling morality, which

is

the

outcome neither
custom
divides

of religion nor of philosophy,

but of

the

only force capable of producing unity of


that
is

sentiment

among men. Everything them and humanity exists on


;

arguable

the one condition

that
its

it

shall abstain

from thought on matters essential to


precisely because morality
is

existence.

And

the

sum
and

total of the prejudices of the


for

community,

it is

impossible
time,

two

rival moralities to exist at the

same

in the

same

place.

I
;

could illustrate this truth by a

great

many examples
^

but there
Mannequin

is

none more
31S

significant

A. France, Le

d'Osier, pp.

sq.

O 2

196

CULTS, MYTHS,

AND RELIGIONS
I

than that of the Emperor Juhan, to whose works


given some attention of
late.

have

Julian,

who

fought for his

gods with so stout a heart and so great a soul, Julian,


the Sun-worshipper, professed every article of Christian
morals.

Like the Christians he contemned the pleasures

of the flesh

and extolled the

efficacy of fasting,

which

brings the

human

into touch with the divine.

Like them,

he upheld the doctrine of an atonement, believed in the


suffering

which

purifies,

and was himself

initiated into

mysteries which answered, no less than those of the


Christians, to a burning desire for purity, renunciation,

and the love

of

God.

In

fine,

his

neo-paganism was

morally as like primitive Christianity as two brothers


are like each other.

What

is

there surprising in this

The two

cults

were twin children of

Rome and

the East.

Both corresponded to the same humane customs, the same deep-seated instincts of the ancient Latin world. Their souls were identical. But they were distinct in name and language and the difference was enough to
;

make them mortal enemies.


words.
slain.

Men

quarrel oftenest for

It is for

words they are readiest to slay and be


Is there

Consider the great revolutionaries.

one
?

who has shown


priests of Arras

the slightest originality in point of morals

Robespierre's ideas on virtue were always those of the

who had pronounced his excommunication.'

CHAPTER XIV
THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY
If, after considering

the various forms of


I

human

activity

in

the infancy of civilisation,

try to determine the

essential character of that civilisation as a whole, the conception of it which presents itself to my mind is that
of

continual

progress,

facilitated

by the perpetual
act.-,

transformation of voluntary and considered

into

secondary
write
:

instincts.
is

Thus, the

modem man
his will

learns to
reflective

to do so, he

bound

to apply

and

power to a useful end.


he writes without

But, once he knows

how

to wTite,
;

effort,

almost 'without thinking

the

conscious act has been transformed into a mechanical act,

and
find

his energies find themselves free to proceed to a

conquest.
?

At the end
multitude

of this of

new development what shall we


instincts,
all

secondary

con;

in formable to man's high nature and social character and, environment, a word, the individual adapted to his

for that

very reason, economising

all efforts, intellectual

or physical, which do not contribute to the perfection


either of the individual or of society.

This economy of useless or injurious effort


the most obvious characteristics of civilisation.
not,

is

one of

Man
;

is

and should not tend

to

become, a machine

but the

197

198

CULTS, MYTHS,
of his creative

AND RELIGIONS
of regulated

work
rest

and inventive personality ought to and


rational
fatigue,

on a certain substratum

activity, which,

by eliminating superfluous

would

make

it

all

the easier for his intelligence to reach the

proper goal by the quickest road.

Emile Augier has somewhere said


could be

'
:

How many people

waste

'
!

made happy with Maxime du Camp


'

the happiness that runs to


called one of his erstwhile

famous novels

Forces Perdues.'
less
it

An

uncivilised

com-

munity expends not a whit


civilised

physical energy than a

community
is

in fact,

expends more, but the


effort is there,
:

expenditure
is

ill-regulated.
effort,

The

but

it

a capricious

void of definite purpose

there

is

production, employment, but, above everything, waste of


energy.

Unconsciousness of

effort is at

once the ideal


is

and the hall-mark

of organised society

a rule which

equally valid in the intellectual world.

Herbert Spencer

has remarked that the savage has as well-furnished a

memory
that are

as the civilised
it

man

the difference being that

he overstocks

with lumber

especially,

with notions

now

fixed

charge on the recollection.


tion might find
It is

by Writing and considered a needless The vexed problem of educaa rational solution along the same lines.

the general lament to-day that there are too

many

things to
difficult to

know
it.

that

it

is

becoming more and more


that educational systems

form the youthful mind without disastrously

overtaxing

The reason

is

are conservative to the very marrow,

and look askance on


for the stage-

any attempt to substitute the locomotive


coach.

For instance,

it

is

absurd to teach children the

minutiae of geography, as though there were no

maps

to

which they could turn

for information

instead of a

bewildering mass of names, they should be taught the use

THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY


of an atlas.

199

Above

all,

every child, from the elementary

schools upward, should have an idea of the proper books


to consult
naer,
'

upon any subject which

interests him.

Valcke:

whose scholarship was beyond dispute, used to say

There are too


all
;

many

subjects

nowadays

for

any man to

know them
ledge
is

but every

man may know where knowa faithful saying, but


it is it still

to be found.'

It is

waits for the acceptance of which

worthy.

am

firmly convinced that in a six or seven years' course of

study

could teach an intelligent child what


;

it

has taken

me
I

thirty years to learn


all

and

it is

with bitter regret that

think of

the gropings in the dark

all

the lost hours

to

which

have been damned since childhood, simply

because among

my

successive

teachers

and

some

of

them bore illustrious ical and economical guidance of effort which should be the inspiring principle of modern education.
I failed to find that

names

method-

In

the

domain
is

of

religion,
less

the tendency

towards

The savage is a economy of effort being literally paralysed by superstition, and groaning under the tyranny of the countless spirits all more or
not
obvious.

less

malevolent
first

by which he beUeves himself surrounded.


is

The

step in advance

the institution of a sacerdotal

caste, to safeguard the religious traditions

common

to a

group

of

men

or tribes.

The imaginary

terrors

on which

the religious sentiment feeds are then reduced in number,

because they are classified and labelled


in intensity,

they are reduced

not only because they are

now more
priest

clearly

defined,

but
a

because

the

primitive

invariably

acts as

mediator

between

timorous humanity and

irascible divinity.

Among
is

the Australians, with


all,

whom

the priesthood exists barely or not at


part of the savage's hfe

the greater

passed in the observance of

200
rites,

CULTS, MYTHS,
ceremonies,

AND RELIGIONS
and
purifications,

initiations,

which

demand a

vast expenditure of attention, memory, and

muscular force

in other words, so

much

useless effort.

With the Greek and Roman, the Assyrian and Egyptian, that is to this activity was diverted into set channels say, there were days and hours reserved for communion
;

with the gods, while for the rest of his time

man was

free

and could devote

his energies to
religious

more

practical purposes,

For Europe, the great

emancipation dates from

the triumph of Christianity.

Unquestionably, the
its

Roman

Empire, and even the barbarous nations on


frontier,

European

contained a

little

knot of

men whose free-thinking

had

liberated
;

observance
lation

them from the crushing yoke of religious but the immense majority of the popuunder the heel of a superstition, not only
Ninety-nine per cent, of
of Eastern

was

still

degrading but all-absorbing.


the subjects of the

Roman Empire devotees


pagan Pantheon

deities or of the old


feast,
ritual,

frittered

away

in

prayer, sacrifice,

and the thousand


of

frivolities

of

an appreciable part
St.

what energy and

intelligence

they possessed.
True, a

Paul came and broke with ritualism.


:

new

ritualism replaced the old

the dread of

the undiscovered country beyond the grave, the vague


idea of evil spirits abroad in the earth,
still

lay heavy on

the minds of men.

But how much


of the
!

freer in all his doings

was the Christian


religious festivals

Middle Ages than the pagan of


sacrifices

ten centuries earlier

The bloody

were gone

no longer entailed the absolute suslife


;

pension of civic

the teaching was

now

that
;

God

desired to be worshipped in spirit


stition

and

in truth

super-

and

all
;

her works were


and,
finally,

theoretically,
cruelly
cults

at least
ali-

condemned

the

oppressive

mentary prohibitions

of

Oriental

had vanished

THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY


forever.

201

Beyond and above

all this,

the idea of priest-

hood, an apphcation of the great law of the division of


labour,
tianity.

made new

progress under the influence of Chris:

In classical antiquity the citizen was priest

professional

hierarchy

scarcely

existed,

for

life-

priestesses of the Vestal type were an exception to the


rule.

On

the other hand, in Christianity, the priestly

functions were severely restricted to a specially trained


class,

which alone bore the burden

of

man's relations to

God.

Everything was the province of the clergy


all,

even

religious speculation, which, after

is sterile

as far as

the good of the community


Christian

is

concerned.

The medieval

had no necessity to form an opinion on things divine he was supposed neither to understand them nor to discuss them the priest taught him both
:

what he should believe and what he should do. Initiative in religious matters, so far from being encouraged, was actually penalised. The heretic, says Bossuet, is he

who has an

opinion

and
At

the Church does not desire

individual opinions.

this distance of time, the

whole

system seems a tyranny.

Undoubtedly,

in

imposing

this discipline of faith, the great pontiffs of the

medieval

Church conceived they were working


souls,

for the salvation of

not for the progress of humanity by the economy

of useless efforts.

But

it is

a characteristic of the great

events of civilisation, that the actors in them are hardly


ever conscious of the part they play and the services they
render.

While the Church was thinking

for the faithful

sounding on their behalf the unfathomable problems

of theology

humanity,
ensuing

working
its

in the

shadow

of the

Church,

was

material

emancipation

and

organising

itself for

a less unequal struggle with the un-

disciplined forces of nature.

The tyrannical domination

202
of
for

CULTS, MYTHS,
souls prepared the

AND RELIGIONS
for the

way

freedom of souls

by

it

alone was the progress of science and industry

rendered possible.

That progress was most active from the sixteenth


to the nineteenth centuries, at

a period

when
is

secular
strictly

society
distinct

was

strictly distinct

from

or

supposed to be

religious

society.

Nor
religions
;

there

any

reason to think the case will be otherwise in the future.

Those who accept the revealed


passively to accept their teaching

will

continue

superstition will tend


for the specialist,

more and more

to

become a study

instead of an incubus stifling

human

activity

but, side

by

side with those

who

listen to the

doctrines of the

world to come, there


others,

will

be an increasing number of

who, without hope of recompense or fear of

punishment, will give themselves to the welfare of their


native earth, to the betterment of the relations between

man and man, and


and misspent
effort.

to the sparing of needless suffering

To
study

the

evolutionist
of

it

is

equally
ideas
in

interesting
their

to

the genesis

moral

connec-

tion with religious

phenomena.
morality
is

Let philosophy preach


the creation
of

as

she

will that

reason,
it is

the

human
nor
:

heart
to

beheves

by
That
has

instinct

that

nearer of kin
existed,

religion.
it

kinship

has always

can
the

be said that time has loosened

the
here,

tie

still,

intimacy

been
has

modified,

and
into

as

elsewhere,

specialisation

come

play.

Morahty

is

the

discipline

of

custom.

discipline implies

restraint

an

influence

The word exerted upon

man

with a view to curbing, in a given interest, his liberty

of action

towards his neighbour and himself.

restric-

THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY


of

203

tion of this type falls into the category of the taboos,

which prohibitions with a permanent moral validity

are only a particular case.

Now
is

it

is

a characteristic

feature of ancient religious codes, the Mosaic


cluded, that no
clear distinction

Law

in-

drawn between moral

vetoes and others of a superstitious or rituahstic cast.

For proof

it

is

only necessary to open Leviticus or

Deuteronomy.
1-2)
:

The

following

is

one example (Deut.

xxii.

Thou

shall not see thy brother's ox or his sheep go


thyself

astray,

and hide

from them

thou shall in any case

bring them again unto thy brother.


not nigh unto thee

And
it

if

thy brother be

and

if

thou

know him
and

not, then

thou shall

bring

it

unto thine

own

house,
it,

shall be with thee,


shall restore
it

until thy brother seek after

and thou

to

him

again.
is

Here

a fine precept
?

all

charity and honesty.


shall

But

what

follows
to

The woman

not

wear that which


put on a woman's
the

perlaineth

a man, neither shall a

man

garment

for all that do so are

an abomination unto

Lord thy God.


This
prohibition

was

cited

before the infamous tribunal of

Joan
there

of

Arc to the stake.


in the twentieth
its
if

and commented upon Rouen which condemned Undoubtedly, there was


as
it

good reason
is

for the clause in the fifteenth century,


;

and

it

is

easy to see

why

should hold
regulation
evident.
:

ground
it

in

contemporary society as a police


this purely

did not, the possibilities of scandal are

But do not imagine that

modern
:

idea was present to the


his

mind

of the biblical legislator

prohibition

of

self-disguisement

corresponds

to

superstitious scruple, which might be called the taboo of

confusion or mixing.

The point
:

will

be

clear,

if

we

finish

the chapter of Deuteronomy

204

CULTS, MYTHS,
Thou
shall not

AND RELIGIONS
lest

sow thy vineyard wilh diverse seeds


which thou hast sown, and

the fruit of thy seed

the fruit of

thy vineyard, be defiled

that

is

to say, lest

it

should be

declared taboo, unusable.

Thou Thou
Thou

shall not shall not

plough with an ox and an ass

together.

wear a garment

of diverse sorts, as of

woollen a7id linen together.


shall

make
all

thee fringes

upon

the four quarters of

thy vesture, wherewith thou coverest thyself.

Notice that

these proscriptions and prescriptions

are couched in the

same imperative terms.


:

It is

not a

question of strict duty or lax duty

all

are equally

necessary to the purity of him

who would observe


charity

the

Law.

Thus commandments

of

and honesty
tillage

toward one's neighbour are placed exactly on the same


level as counsels relative to a

man's dress and the


origin of those

of his field.

Here we see plainly the


which
ligion
still

moral codes
re-

govern mankind.
first

Organised sacerdotal

the

emancipatress of

man began by
:

codi-

fying the interdicts and injunctions which

an endless
the

variety of superstitions had brought into vogue

Mosaic lawgiver

is

to

be regarded as an editor, who


of the old taboos

doubtless eliminated

many

composing

his material, confirmed

many, but invented none.

And
in

as the Mosaic law

is,

so are the laws ascribed to Pytha-

goras

on the one hand, commands and prohibitions

force to this

day

on the other, warnings against emptying

a cup to the last drop, or omitting to kiss the gate of the

town one leaves

All these codifications, then, sprang out of a perfect

chaos, in which the loftiest moral ordinances were en-

tangled with a host of capricious precepts straight from


THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY
the mint of superstition.
of heterogeneous notions, united
rationality, classification

205

Now, where we have a welter by no common bond of and selection are bound to follow.

And

here

it is

that the idea of social utility comes in

an
a

idea on which a foolish attempt had been

made to

establish

a priori the whole of morality


logician

as

though

man were

from

his

mother's womb, and at one effort had

reared en bloc the complex structure of law and custom

which regulates

his conduct.
is

The

part played

by the

utilitarian principle

reducible to this.

Man

starts with

a mass of prescriptions and proscriptions, the disregard of

which
which

is is

accounted crime.

Acting on the Stoic paradox

only a survival from the primitive ages


:

he

admits no gradation of crime


heinous.
of his

every offence

is

equally

Experience, however, quickly shows that some

prohibitions do

good service to the order and

security essential to every organism

and

for that reason

to all

human

society.

Conversely, others are seen to

wear that stamp

of social inutility

which characterises
(it

the purely religious taboo.

The day soon comes

had

come
taboo

to the

Hebrews by the time


is

of the Prophets)

when
and was

the social taboo

distinguished from the superstitious


is

when

observance of the one


is

enforced,

observance of the other


that the

left

optional.

Thus

it

way was paved, among the Jews, for that great movement of opinion which was destined to culminate Owe no man anything, hut to in the doctrine of St. Paul
:

love

one another

for he that loveth another hath fulfilled

the law.

For
kill,

this,

Thou

shall not

commit

adultery,

Thou

shall not

false witness,

Thou shall not steal, Thou shall not bear Thou shall not covet and if there be any
;

other

commandment it is briefly comprehended namely Thou shall love thy neighbour as

in this saying,
thyself.

Love

2o6

CULTS, MYTHS,
ill

AND RELIGIONS
:

worketh no

to

his neighbour

therefore love is the ful-

filling of the

law}
is

And what
ethics,

the Pauhne love of our neighbour but

the instinct of soUdarity, which was famihar to ancient

and constitutes the


is

eternal basis of

all

morality

?
:

For morality
the

either social, or the

shadow

of a

dream

there can be no question of a discipline of custom, save for

man who
life,

lives in a society.

It

is,

therefore, the fact


is

of social

not the arbitrary behest of godhead, that

the well-spring of moral obligations.


St.

All those obligations

Paul sums up in

solidarity

and, in the few lines

we

have quoted, he

rises for
all

the
ages.

moment

to the height of the

greatest thinkers of

But he

rises at

the cost of an inaccuracy, which was


St.

doubtless voluntary.

Paul alludes to the Decalogue,

and quotes from it several precepts, the moral bearing of which is undeniable. The following he does not quote
(Exodus XX.)
:

Thou

shall not

make unto
is

thee

any graven
under

image, or any likeness of anything that

in heaven above,

or that is in the earth beneath, or that is in the water


the earth.

Thou
vain.

shall not take

the

name
to

of the

Lord thy God in

Remember
All these

the

Sabbath day

keep

it

holy.

commandments
The

are part of the Decalogue,

yet have absolutely nothing in


one's neighbour.

common

with the love of

apostle, therefore,

was not

justified
'

in holding that all the other

prehended

in this saying,

commandments were comThou shalt love thy neighbour


either superfluous

as thyself.'

Evidently the author of the Epistle con-

sidered the remaining


*

commandments

Romans

xiii.

8-10.

leave on one side the question of authen-

ticity.

It is certain that the passage

was written before

a.d. 140.

THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY


or obsolete, and
explicitly say so.
it

207

is

to be regretted that he did not


for

Mankind, however, was not ripe


;

so exalted a philosophy

not suddenly, nor without a


of
ritual.

compromise, could morality quit the clogs


Moreover,
St. Paul's

words had

to wait centuries before


its

they were understood.


cast-iron creed

Medieval Christianity, with

good

faith

and compulsory ceremonial, believed in all that it was inspired by the very apostle who
in

had written that the whole Law was contained


love

mutual

in

the idea of solidarity.


since this mixture of gold
superstition,

Now,

and quartz, moral ideas


religious

and unadulterated
legislation

was drawn by

from the great seam of popular custom and

prejudice and given to the world without

more ado

as the

expression of the divine

will,

the result has been an alliance


will

between
broken
lightly
:

religion

and morality which


It

not soon be cannot

for morality, being the issue of religion,


is,

deny her antecedents.


of

therefore,

an error

to

speak

independent morality
:

an

historical error,

and something worse

for it fosters the vulgar misappre-

hension which assumes the existence of an absolute,

immovable morality, whose canons have been fixed once and for ever. That misapprehension is common to the
religious

and the non-religious mind

for the

one looks

upon the Sermon on the Mount

as an eternal code of

morals, and the other attributes a like authority to the

Declaration of the Rights of Man.

And

yet

it

is

clear

to the evolutionist that, while each of these admirable

documents embodies the moral


first

ideal of its

own

age, the
it

mystic, the second practical and bourgeois,

is

over-late in the

day

for civilisation to acquiesce either in

Essenian mysticism or in the rather narrow principles

beloved of the eighteenth-century Tiers Etat.

It is all


AND RELIGIONS
Man

2o8

CULTS. MYTHS,

very well to have the Declaration of the Rights of

taught and expounded in schools, but only on condition


that
it

shall not

be represented as the alpha and omega of

political

and

social

wisdom.
he

Unhappily, so natural are

theological prejudices to
of evolution, that, before

man, and so unfamiliar the idea


is

well emancipated

from one
another

theology, he

is

forging

and riveting the

fetters of

passing
orthodoxy
preach his

incessantly

from orthodoxy to heresy, and

rejoicing that the heresy of yesterday has


of to-day.

become the
alone

Worst
;

of
it

all,

he

is

not content to

new
fire

recalcitrancy
correction of

and and unbelief undergo once more the sharp


doctrine
reign

must

and

steel.

It is a tearful spectacle, but,

to the evolutionist, a lesson


it

and a joy
instinct

for

he reads in
of

the tenacity of

human

and the warping

centuries of mistaken practice. Only long-drawn process, will men and by a reared gradually, in the atmosphere of dogmatism be changed into evolutionists,

human judgment by

and

realise that, after shuffling off

one obsolete

orthodoxy, there
replace
of
it

is something better to be done than to by another, impressed with the same old stamp

human
It is

frailty.
call oneself

easy enough to

an evolutionist

it

is

only a word.

The

difficulty lies in

judging the past and

the present

the facts of history, intellectual from the standpoint


and not from that
if

political, religious,

and

of

the

evolutionist,

of the dogmatist. of

For

my own

part,

it

would hasten the progress


I

dogmatism towards
no pang,
the time
of

evolution, I could wish to see evolution taught in the

elementary schools.
generally given to the

should

feel

if

commentary on the Declaration


But,
if

the Rights of

Man were devoted

to the ideas of Lamarck,


it is

Darwin, and Spencer.

always

difficult

THE PROGRESS OF HUMANITY


perhaps dangerous

209

to introduce the notion of evolution

and the relativity of things and ideas to children, accustomed as they are at home to the unreasoning obedience which is best for the child and the savage, the case is Evoludifferent when they are ripened into manhood. tion governs the spiritual and the material world alike. No idea is better calculated to teach a man tolerance, and
to

make him
is

look with indulgent eyes on the errors and

crimes of the past and the crimes and errors of the present.

Nor
it is

there any idea

more

fruitful in consolation

for

the translation into the language of twentieth-century

philosophy of those Messianic promises which have so


long soothed with their illusions

human

suffering

and

human

heartache.

word

in conclusion

on ethnology
be taken
thing

and archaeology.
seriously,

No work on
studied in

either subject can

unless the past

whether
its
;

revealed on paper

or on stone

is

genesis.

The
is

first

needful

is

to

throw into

relief

the elements from which

evolution constituted that past

the second

to trace the

workings of the evolution

itself.
it

Evolution
is the

is the

law

of

the study of humanity, because


itself.

law of humanity

THE END

PRINTED BY 8P0TTISW00DE AXD CO. LTD., COLCHESTER LONDON AND ETON

CELTIC LITERATURE, FOLK LORE


ETC.

PRIMITIVE PATERNITY.
in Relation to the

The Myth

History of the Family.


i8j. net.

By

of Supernatural Birth E. S. Hautland,

F.S.A.

2 vols.
is

certainly a most interesting contribution to the study both of primitive culture and folk-lore." Scotsman,

"The book

CELTIC LITERATURE.
Preface and Notes by Mr.

By

Matthew Arnold.
3^. 6d. net.
it

With

Alfrkd Nutt,

Mr. Nutt, who admires the essay enormously, has done

the great

which it was written, and of service of stating fully the circumstances correcting in footnotes those errors either of fact or impression which the great improvement of Celtic scholarship has laid open to detection.

THREE MIDDLE ENGLISH ROMANCES.


Hibuard.
2s.

Uniform with

the

Arthurian

By Laijra Romance Series.

net.

MONUMENTA HISTORICA CELTICA.


A Collection of references to the Celts in classical
Demy
8vo.

By W. Dinan.
authors.

2 vols.

Vol.

I.

15^-.

net.

POPULAR STUDIES
6d. net.

No.

3.-OSSIAN AND OSSIBy Alfred Nutt.


iSew Edition.

ANIC LITERATURE.

FOLK-TALES AND LEGENDS OF THE SANTAL PARGANAS. Collected by the Rev. D. Bodding, and translated

by C. H.

Bompas, Indian
of 400 pp.

Civil

Service.

Demy

8vo.

Upwards "The stories make


Cloth.

los. 6d. net.


is

dehghtful reading, and there

much

instruction

mingled with the deWght." Expository Times.

EPISTLES

OF" ST.

PAUL.

By

the Rev. E. S.

Buchanan.

[/ Preparation.

By THOUGHTS ON ULTIMATE PROBLEMS. Crown 8vo.

F W.

Frankland.

IS. 6d. net. physical subjects.

Price Fifth and revised edition. series of short studies on theological and meta-

THE BOOK OF RUTH.


Crown
the
8vo.

By

the Rev. R.

H.

Bound.

y.

dd. net.

J.

literal

Steuart, S.J. translation from

Hebrew.

constituting a new THE SCIENCE OF THE SCIENCES, solves great ultimate problems.

system of the universe, which By H. JAMYN Brooks. Probable price, y. 6d. to 5.?. [/ Preparation.
study by

THE EUCHARIST. A
Price 6d. net.

Amy

Brooks.

Demy

8vo.

DAVID NUTT,

17

Grape Street, New Oxford Street.

IRISH TEXTS SOCIETY.


INEDITED IRISH TEXTS WITH ACCOMPANYING ENGLISl. VERSION, NOTES AND INTRODUCTION.
Demy
Vol.
8vo. cloth.

I.-THE ADVENTURES OF THE LAD OF THE FERULE. The Adventures of the Children of the King of
Two Irish Romantic Tales of the i6th and 17th Centuries, edited and translated for the first time by Douglas Hydk, LL.D., with Introduction, Notes and Glossary. 1899. xvi-176 pp. YOut of Print.
Norway.

Vol. II.

BRICRIU. An
Vol.

fled BRICREND; THE FEAST OF


the POETICAL WORKS OF EOGAN

early Gaelic Saga, edited, with Translation, Introduction and Notes by George Henderson, M.A., Ph.D. lxvii-209 10 ut of Print. 1899. pp.

III.

O'RAHILLY.
Vol. Vol.

For the first time edited, with accompanying English version. Introduction, Notes and Glossary by the Rev. Father DiNEEN, S.J. 1900. lxiii-304 pp. [Out of Print.

IV.-HISTORYOF IRELAND.
ing.

By Geoffrey KeatI.

Edited by

David Comyn.

Vol.

1901.

los. Gd. net.

CLAIRINGHNEACH.
lation,

V the MARTIAL CAREER OF CONGHAL


Edited for the first time, with TransIntroduction, Notes, and Glossary, by P, RIacSweeney, lx7iii-233 pp. 105. 6d. net. 1902.

M.A.
Vol.

VI. the IRISH

AENEID.

Printed for the


1903.

first

time
J,

from fourteenth century MSS., and Translated by the Rev.

Calder. With
Vol.
VII. Fionn.
Irish

Introduction, Notes, Glossary.

ios.6d.x\et.

DUANAIRE
Part
I.

FINN. The Book of the Lays of Text with Translation into English, by John
Demy
is

MacNeill.

Svo.

lxv-208 pp.

los.

6d.

net.

Mr. MacNeill's Introduction

a most valuable contribution to the

elucidation of the " origines " of the Ossianic cycle Irish romantic history of ihe third ceniury A.D.

and

to the criticism of

Vols. VIII. and IX

LAND.
Vol.

KEATING'S HISTORY OF
and
III.
10^. 6d.

IRE-

Vols. II.

each net.

X THE STORY OF THE CROP-EARED DOG. THE STORY OF EAGLE BOY. Two Irish Arthurian
Romances. Edited and Macalistes. ix-204 pp.
Trai slated
105. 6d. net.

by

R.

A.

Stewart

Vol.

XL -the
MacErlean,

POEMS OF DAVID O'BRUADAIR.


John
Edited with L. C.
S.J.

Containing poems down to the year 1666. Part I. Introduction, Translation and Notes by the Rev.

206 pp.
III.

lOi-.

6d. net.
loj. 6^. net.

\'0L.

XII.

Reprint of Vol.
17

Revised and Enlarged.

Catalogue on application.

DAVID NUTT,

Grape Street, New Oxford Street.^

/^

RETURN

TO#^

CIRCULATION DEPARTMENT 202 Main Library


1

LOAN PERIOD HOME USE

RETURN TO the

circulation desk of
or to the

any

University of California Library

NORTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY


BIdg. 400,

FACILITY

Richmond

Field Station

University of California

Richrmond,

CA

94804-4698

ALL BOOKS MAY BE RECALLED AFTER 7 DAYS 2-month loans may be renewed by calling (510)642-6753 1-year loans may be recharged by bringing books to NRLF Renewals and recharges may be made 4 days prior to due date.

DUE AS STAMPED BELOW

"JUL 8

1998
3 2005

SEP

12,000(11/95)

nrOliuiHJi

You might also like